home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1994-09-11 | 494.3 KB | 8,482 lines |
- 1906
- MARK TWAIN'S SPEECHES
- by Mark Twain
- PREFACE
- PREFACE.
-
- FROM THE PREFACE TO THE ENGLISH EDITION OF
- "MARK TWAIN'S SKETCHES."
-
- If I were to sell the reader a barrel of molasses, and he, instead
- of sweetening his substantial dinner with the same at judicious
- intervals, should eat the entire barrel at one sitting, and then abuse
- me for making him sick, I would say that he deserved to be made sick
- for not knowing any better how to utilize the blessings this world
- affords. And if I sell to the reader this volume of nonsense, and
- he, instead of seasoning his graver reading with a chapter of it now
- and then, when his mind demands such relaxation, unwisely overdoses
- himself with several chapters of it at a single sitting, he will
- deserve to be nauseated, and he will have nobody to blame but
- himself if he is. There is no more sin in publishing an entire
- volume of nonsense than there is in keeping a candy-store with no
- hardware in it. It lies wholly with the customer whether he will
- injure himself by means of either, or will derive from them the
- benefits which they will afford him if he uses their possibilities
- judiciously.
- Respectfully submitted,
- THE AUTHOR.
- THE STORY OF A SPEECH.
-
- An address delivered in 1877, and a review of it twenty-nine years
- later. The original speech was delivered at a dinner given by the
- publishers of The Atlantic Monthly in honor of the seventieth
- anniversary of the birth of John Greenleaf Whittier, at the Hotel
- Brunswick, Boston, December 17, 1877.
-
- THIS is an occasion peculiarly meet for the digging up of pleasant
- reminiscences concerning literary folk; therefore I will drop
- lightly into history myself. Standing here on the shore of the
- Atlantic and contemplating certain of its largest literary billows,
- I am reminded of a thing which happened to me thirteen years ago, when
- I had just succeeded in stirring up a little Nevadian literary
- puddle myself, whose spume-flakes were beginning to blow thinly
- Californiaward. I started an inspection tramp through the southern
- mines of California. I was callow and conceited, and I resolved to try
- the virtue of my nom de guerre.
- I very soon had an opportunity. I knocked at a miner's lonely log
- cabin in the foot-hills of the Sierras just at nightfall. It was
- snowing at the time. A jaded, melancholy man of fifty, barefooted,
- opened the door to me. When he heard my nom de guerre he looked more
- dejected than before. He let me in- pretty reluctantly, I thought- and
- after the customary bacon and beans, black coffee and hot whiskey, I
- took a pipe. This sorrowful man had not said three words up to this
- time. Now he spoke up and said, in the voice of one who is secretly
- suffering, "You're the fourth- I'm going to move." "The fourth
- what?" said I. "The fourth littery man that has been here in
- twenty-four hours- I'm going to move." "You don't tell me!" said I;
- "who were the others?" "Mr. Longfellow, Mr. Emerson, and Mr. Oliver
- Wendell Holmes- consound the lot!"
- You can easily believe I was interested. I supplicated- three hot
- whiskeys did the rest- and finally the melancholy miner began. Said
- he:
- "They came here just at dark yesterday evening, and I let them in of
- course. Said they were going to the Yosemite. They were a rough lot,
- but that's nothing; everybody looks rough that travels afoot. Mr.
- Emerson was a seedy little bit of a chap, red-headed. Mr. Holmes was
- as fat as a balloon; he weighed as much as three hundred, and had
- double chins all the way down to his stomach. Mr. Longfellow was built
- like a prize-fighter. His head was cropped and bristly, like as if
- he had a wig made of hair-brushes. His nose lay straight down his
- face, like a finger with the end joint tilted up. They had been
- drinking, I could see that. And what queer talk they used! Mr.
- Holmes inspected this cabin, then he took me by the buttonhole, and
- says he:
-
- "'Through the deep caves of thought
- I hear a voice that sings,
- Build thee more stately mansions,
- O my soul!'
-
- "Says I, 'I can't afford it, Mr. Holmes, and moreover I don't want
- to.' Blamed if I liked it pretty well, either, coming from a stranger,
- that way. However, I started to get out my bacon and beans, when Mr.
- Emerson came and looked on awhile, and then he takes me aside by the
- buttonhole and says:
-
- "'Give me agates for my meat;
- Give me cantharids to eat;
- From air and ocean bring me foods,
- From all zones and altitudes.'
-
- "Says I, 'Mr. Emerson, if you'll excuse me, this ain't no hotel.'
- You see it sort of riled me- I warn't used to the ways of littery
- swells. But I went on a-sweating over my work, and next comes Mr.
- Longfellow and buttonholes me, and interrupts me. Says he:
-
- "'Honor be to Mudjekeewis!
- You shall hear how Pau-Puk-Keewis-'
-
- "But I broke in, and says I, 'Beg your pardon, Mr. Longfellow, if
- you'll be so kind as to hold your yawp for about five minutes and
- let me get this grub ready, you'll do me proud.' Well, sir, after
- they'd filled up I set out the jug. Mr. Holmes looks at it, and then
- he fires up all of a sudden and yells:
-
- "'Flash out a stream of blood-red wine!
- For I would drink to other days.'
-
- "By George, I was getting kind of worked up. I don't deny it, I
- was getting kind of worked up. I turns to Mr. Holmes, and says I,
- 'Looky here, my fat friend, I'm a-running this shanty, and if the
- court knows herself, you'll take whiskey straight or you'll go dry.'
- Them's the very words I said to him. Now I don't want to sass such
- famous littery people, but you see they kind of forced me. There ain't
- nothing unreasonable 'bout me; I don't mind a passel of guests
- a-treadin' on my tail three or four times, but when it comes to
- standing on it it's different, 'and if the court knows herself,' I
- says, 'you'll take whiskey straight or you'll go dry.' Well, between
- drinks they'd swell around the cabin and strike attitudes and spout;
- and pretty soon they got out a greasy old deck and went to playing
- euchre at ten cents a corner- on trust. I began to notice some
- pretty suspicious things. Mr. Emerson dealt, looked at his hand, shook
- his head, says:
-
- "'I am the doubter and the doubt-'
-
- and ca'mly bunched the hands and went to shuffling for a new layout.
- Says he:
-
- "'They reckon ill who leave me out;
- They know not well the subtle ways I keep.
- I pass and deal again!'
-
- "Hang'd if he didn't go ahead and do it, too! Oh, he was a cool one!
- Well, in about a minute things were running pretty tight, but all of a
- sudden I see by Mr. Emerson's eye he judged he had 'em. He had already
- corralled two tricks, and each of the others one. So now he kind of
- lifts a little in his chair and says:
-
- "'I tire of globes and aces!-
- Too long the game is played!'
-
- - and down he fetched a right bower. Mr. Longfellow smiles as sweet as
- pie and says:
-
- "'Thanks, thanks to thee, my worthy friend,
- For the lesson thou hast taught,'
-
- - and blamed if he didn't down with another right bower! Emerson
- claps his hand on his bowie, Longfellow claps his on his revolver, and
- I went under a bunk. There was going to be trouble; but that monstrous
- Holmes rose up, wobbling his double chins, and says he, 'Order,
- gentlemen; the first man that draws, I'll lay down on him and
- smother him!' All quiet on the Potomac, you bet!
- "They were pretty how-come-you-so by now, and they begun to blow.
- Emerson says, 'The nobbiest thing I ever wrote was "Barbara
- Frietchie."' Says Longfellow, 'It don't begin with my "Biglow
- Papers."' Says Holmes, 'My "Thanatopis" lays over 'em both.' They
- mighty near ended in a fight. Then they wished they had some more
- company- and Mr. Emerson pointed to me and says:
-
- "'Is yonder squalid peasant all
- That this proud nursery could breed?'
-
- "He was a-whetting his bowie on his boot- so I let it pass. Well,
- sir, next they took it into their heads that they would like some
- music; so they made me stand up and sing "When Johnny Comes Marching
- Home" till I dropped- at thirteen minutes past four this morning.
- That's what I've been through, my friend. When I woke at seven, they
- were leaving, thank goodness, and Mr. Longfellow had my only boots on,
- and his'n under his arm. Says I, 'Hold on, there, Evangeline, what are
- you going to do with them?' He says, 'Going to make tracks with 'em;
- because:
-
- "'Lives of great men all remind us
- We can make our lives sublime;
- And, departing, leave behind us
- Footprints on the sands of time.'
-
- As I said, Mr. Twain, you are the fourth in twenty-four hours- and I'm
- going to move; I ain't suited to a littery atmosphere."
- I said to the miner, "Why, my dear sir, these were not the
- gracious singers to whom we and the world pay loving reverence and
- homage; these were impostors."
- The miner investigated me with a calm eye for a while; then said he,
- "Ah! impostors, were they? Are you?"
- I did not pursue the subject, and since then I have not travelled on
- my nom de guerre enough to hurt. Such was the reminiscence I was moved
- to contribute, Mr. Chairman. In my enthusiasm I may have exaggerated
- the details a little, but you will easily forgive me that fault, since
- I believe it is the first time I have ever deflected from
- perpendicular fact on an occasion like this.
-
- From Mark Twain's Autobiography.
-
- January 11, 1906.
-
- Answer to a letter received this morning:
-
- DEAR MRS. H.,- I am forever your debtor for reminding me of that
- curious passage in my life. During the first year or two after it
- happened, I could not bear to think of it. My pain and shame were so
- intense, and my sense of having been an imbecile so settled,
- established and confirmed, that I drove the episode entirely from my
- mind- and so all these twenty-eight or twenty-nine years I have
- lived in the conviction that my performance of that time was coarse,
- vulgar, and destitute of humor. But your suggestion that you and
- your family found humor in it twenty-eight years ago moved me to
- look into the matter. So I commissioned a Boston typewriter to delve
- among the Boston papers of that bygone time and send me a copy of it.
- It came this morning, and if there is any vulgarity about it I am
- not able to discover it. If it isn't innocently and ridiculously
- funny, I am no judge. I will see to it that you get a copy.
-
- What I have said to Mrs. H. is true. I did suffer during a year or
- two from the deep humiliations of that episode. But at last, in
- 1888, in Venice, my wife and I came across Mr. and Mrs. A. P. C., of
- Concord, Massachusetts, and a friendship began then of the sort
- which nothing but death terminates. The C.'s were very bright people
- and in every way charming and companionable. We were together a
- month or two in Venice and several months in Rome, afterward, and
- one day that lamented break of mine was mentioned. And when I was on
- the point of lathering those people for bringing it to my mind when
- I had gotten the memory of it almost squelched, I perceived with joy
- that the C.'s were indignant about the way that my performance had
- been received in Boston. They poured out their opinions most freely
- and frankly about the frosty attitude of the people who were present
- at that performance, and about the Boston newspapers for the
- position they had taken in regard to the matter. That position was
- that I had been irreverent beyond belief, beyond imagination. Very
- well; I had accepted that as a fact for a year or two, and had been
- thoroughly miserable about it whenever I thought of it- which was
- not frequently, if I could help it. Whenever I thought of it I
- wondered how I ever could have been inspired to do so unholy a
- thing. Well, the C.'s comforted me, but they did not persuade me to
- continue to think about the unhappy episode. I resisted that. I
- tried to get it out of my mind, and let it die, and I succeeded. Until
- Mrs. H.'s letter came, it had been a good twenty-five years since I
- had thought of that matter; and when she said that the thing was funny
- I wondered if possibly she might be right. At any rate, my curiosity
- was aroused, and I wrote to Boston and got the whole thing copied,
- as above set forth.
- I vaguely remember some of the details of that gathering- dimly I
- can see a hundred people no, perhaps fifty- shadowy figures sitting at
- tables feeding, ghosts now to me, and nameless forevermore. I don't
- know who they were, but I can very distinctly see, seated at the grand
- table and facing the rest of us, Mr. Emerson, supernaturally grave,
- unsmiling? Mr. Whittier, grave, lovely, his beautiful spirit shining
- out of his face; Mr. Longfellow, with his silken white hair and his
- benignant face; Dr. Oliver Wendell Holmes, flashing smiles and
- affection and all good-fellowship everywhere like a rose-diamond whose
- facets are being turned toward the light first one way and then
- another- a charming man, and always fascinating, whether he was
- talking or whether he was sitting still (what he would call still, but
- what would be more or less motion to other people). I can see those
- figures with entire distinctness across this abyss of time.
- One other feature is clear- Willie Winter (for these past thousand
- years dramatic editor of the New York Tribune, and still occupying
- that high post in his old age) was there. He was much younger then
- than he is now, and he showed it. It was always a pleasure to me to
- see Willie Winter at a banquet. During a matter of twenty years I
- was seldom at a banquet where Willie Winter was not also present,
- and where he did not read a charming poem written for the occasion. He
- did it this time, and it was up to standard: dainty, happy, choicely
- phrased, and as good to listen to as music, and sounding exactly as if
- it was pouring unprepared out of heart and brain.
- Now at that point ends all that was pleasurable about that notable
- celebration of Mr. Whittier's seventieth birthday- because I got up at
- that point and followed Winter, with what I have no doubt I supposed
- would be the gem of the evening- the gay oration above quoted from the
- Boston paper. I had written it all out the day before and had
- perfectly memorized it, and I stood up there at my genial and happy
- and self-satisfied ease, and begin to deliver it. Those majestic
- guests, that row of venerable and still active volcanoes, listened, as
- did everybody else in the house, with attentive interest. Well, I
- delivered myself of- we'll say the first two hundred words of my
- speech. I was expecting no returns from that part of the speech, but
- this was not the case as regarded the rest of it. I arrived now at the
- dialogue: "The old miner said, 'You are the fourth, I'm going to
- move.' 'The fourth what?' said I. He answered, 'The fourth littery man
- that has been here in twenty-four hours. I am going to move.' 'Why,
- you don't tell me,' said I. 'Who were the others?' 'Mr. Longfellow,
- Mr. Emerson, Mr. Oliver Wendell Holmes, consound the lot-'"
- Now, then, the house's attention continued, but the expression of
- interest in the faces turned to a sort of black frost. I wondered what
- the trouble was. I didn't know. I went on, but with difficulty- I
- struggled along, and entered upon that miner's fearful description
- of the bogus Emerson, the bogus Holmes, the bogus Longfellow, always
- hoping- but with a gradually perishing hope- that somebody would
- laugh, or that somebody would at least smile, but nobody did. I didn't
- know enough to give it up and sit down, I was too new to public
- speaking, and so I went on with this awful performance, and carried it
- clear through to the end, in front of a body of people who seemed
- turned to stone with horror. It was the sort of expression their faces
- would have worn if I had been making these remarks about the Deity and
- the rest of the Trinity; there is no milder way in which to describe
- the petrified condition and the ghastly expression of those people.
- When I sat down it was with a heart which had long ceased to beat. I
- shall never be as dead again as I was then. I shall never be as
- miserable again as I was then. I speak now as one who doesn't know
- what the condition of things may be in the next world, but in this one
- I shall never be as wretched again as I was then. Howells, who was
- near me, tried to say a comforting word, but couldn't get beyond a
- gasp. There was no use- he understood the whole size of the
- disaster. He had good intentions, but the words froze before they
- could get out. It was an atmosphere that would freeze anything. If
- Benvenuto Cellini's salamander had been in that place he would not
- have survived to be put into Cellini's autobiography. There was a
- frightful pause. There was an awful silence, a desolating silence.
- Then the next man on the list had to get up- there was no help for it.
- That was Bishop- Bishop had just burst handsomely upon the world
- with a most acceptable novel, which had appeared in The Atlantic
- Monthly, a place which would make any novel respectable and any author
- noteworthy. In this case the novel itself was recognized as being,
- without extraneous help, respectable. Bishop was away up in the public
- favor, and he was an object of high interest, consequently there was a
- sort of national expectancy in the air; we may say our American
- millions were standing, from Maine to Texas and from Alaska to
- Florida, holding their breath, their lips parted, their hands ready to
- applaud, when Bishop should get up on that occasion, and for the first
- time in his life speak in public. It was under these damaging
- conditions that he got up to "make good," as the vulgar say. I had
- spoken several times before, and that is the reason why I was able
- to go on without dying in my tracks, as I ought to have done- but
- Bishop had had no experience. He was up facing those awful deities-
- facing those other people, those strangers- facing human beings for
- the first time in his life, with a speech to utter. No doubt it was
- well packed away in his memory, no doubt it was fresh and usable,
- until I had been heard from. I suppose that after that, and under
- the smothering pall of that dreary silence, it began to waste away and
- disappear out of his head like the rags breaking from the edge of a
- fog, and presently there wasn't any fog left. He didn't go on- he
- didn't last long. It was not many sentences after his first before
- he began to hesitate, and break, and lose his grip, and totter, and
- wobble, and at last he slumped down in a limp and mushy pile.
- Well, the programme for the occasion was probably not more than
- one-third finished, but it ended there. Nobody rose. The next man
- hadn't strength enough to get up, and everybody looked so dazed, so
- stupefied, paralyzed, it was impossible for anybody to do anything, or
- even try. Nothing could go on in that strange atmosphere. Howells
- mournfully, and without words, hitched himself to Bishop and me and
- supported us out of the room. It was very kind- he was most
- generous. He towed us tottering away into some room in that
- building, and we sat down there. I don't know what my remark was
- now, but I know the nature of it. It was the kind of remark you make
- when you know that nothing in the world can help your case. But
- Howells was honest- he had to say the heart-breaking things he did
- say: that there was no help for this calamity, this shipwreck, this
- cataclysm; that this was the most disastrous thing that had ever
- happened in anybody's history- and then he added, "That is, for you-
- and consider what you have done for Bishop. It is bad enough in your
- case, you deserve to suffer. You have committed this crime, and you
- deserve to have all you are going to get. But here is an innocent man.
- Bishop had never done you any harm, and see what you have done to him.
- He can never hold his head up again. The world can never look upon
- Bishop as being a live person. He is a corpse."
- That is the history of that episode of twenty-eight years ago, which
- pretty nearly killed me with shame during that first year or two
- whenever it forced its way into my mind.
-
- Now then, I take that speech up and examine it. As I said, it
- arrived this morning, from Boston. I have read it twice, and unless
- I am an idiot, it hasn't a single defect in it from the first word
- to the last. It is just as good as good can be. It is smart; it is
- saturated with humor. There isn't a suggestion of coarseness or
- vulgarity in it anywhere. What could have been the matter with that
- house? It is amazing, it is incredible, that they didn't shout with
- laughter, and those deities the loudest of them all. Could the fault
- have been with me? Did I lose courage when I saw those great men up
- there whom I was going to describe in such a strange fashion? If
- that happened, if I showed doubt, that can account for it, for you
- can't be successfully funny if you show that you are afraid of it.
- Well, I can't account for it, but if I had those beloved and revered
- old literary immortals back here now on the platform at Carnegie
- Hall I would take that same old speech, deliver it, word for word, and
- melt them till they'd run all over that stage. Oh, the fault must have
- been with me, it is not in the speech at all.
- PLYMOUTH ROCK AND THE PILGRIMS.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE FIRST ANNUAL DINNER, N. E. SOCIETY,
- PHILADELPHIA, DECEMBER 22, 1881.
-
- On calling upon Mr. Clemens to make response, President Rollins
- said:
- "This sentiment has been assigned to one who was never exactly
- born in New England, nor, perhaps, were any of his ancestors. He is
- not technically, therefore, of New England descent. Under the
- painful circumstances in which he has found himself, however, he has
- done the best he could- he has had all his children born there, and
- has made of himself a New England ancestor. He is a self-made man.
- More than this, and better even, in cheerful, hopeful, helpful
- literature he is of New England ascent. To ascend there in anything
- that's reasonable is difficult, for- confidentially, with the door
- shut- we all know that they are the brightest, ablest sons of that
- goodly land who never leave it, and it is among and above them that
- Mr. Twain has made his brilliant and permanent ascent- become a man of
- mark."
-
- I RISE to protest. I have kept still for years, but really I think
- there is no sufficient justification for this sort of thing. What do
- you want to celebrate those people for?- those ancestors of yours of
- 1620- the Mayflower tribe, I mean. What do you want to celebrate
- them for? Your pardon: the gentleman at my left assures me that you
- are not celebrating the Pilgrims themselves, but the landing of the
- Pilgrims at Plymouth Rock on the 22d of December. So you are
- celebrating their landing. Why, the other pretext was thin enough, but
- this is thinner than ever; the other was tissue, tinfoil,
- fish-bladder, but this is gold-leaf. Celebrating their landing! What
- was there remarkable about it, I would like to know? What can you be
- thinking of? Why, those Pilgrims had been at sea three or four months.
- It was the very middle of winter: it was as cold as death off Cape Cod
- there. Why shouldn't they come ashore? If they hadn't landed there
- would be some reason for celebrating the fact. It would have been a
- case of monumental leatherheadedness which the world would not
- willingly let die. If it had been you, gentlemen, you probably
- wouldn't have landed, but you have no shadow of right to be
- celebrating, in your ancestors, gifts which they did not exercise, but
- only transmitted. Why, to be celebrating the mere landing of the
- Pilgrims- to be trying to make out that this most natural and simple
- and customary procedure was an extraordinary circumstance- a
- circumstance to be amazed at, and admired, aggrandized and
- glorified, at orgies like this for two hundred and sixty years- hang
- it, a horse would have known enough to land; a horse- Pardon again;
- the gentleman on my right assures me that it was not merely the
- landing of the Pilgrims that we are celebrating, but the Pilgrims
- themselves. So we have struck an inconsistency here- one says it was
- the landing, the other says it was the Pilgrims. It is an
- inconsistency characteristic of your intractable and disputatious
- tribe, for you never agree about anything but Boston. Well, then, what
- do you want to celebrate those Pilgrims for? They were a mighty hard
- lot- you know it. I grant you, without the slightest unwillingness,
- that they were a deal more gentle and merciful and just than were
- the people of Europe of that day; I grant you that they are better
- than their predecessors. But what of that?- that is nothing. People
- always progress. You are better than your fathers and grandfathers
- were (this is the first time I have ever aimed a measureless slander
- at the departed, for I consider such things improper). Yes, those
- among you who have not been in the penitentiary, if such there be, are
- better than your fathers and grandfathers were; but is that any
- sufficient reason for getting up annual dinners and celebrating you?
- No, by no means- by no means. Well, I repeat, those Pilgrims were a
- hard lot. They took good care of themselves, but they abolished
- everybody else's ancestors. I am a border-ruffian from the State of
- Missouri. I am a Connecticut Yankee by adoption. In me, you have
- Missouri morals, Connecticut culture; this, gentlemen, is the
- combination which makes the perfect man. But where are my ancestors?
- Whom shall I celebrate? Where shall I find the raw material?
- My first American ancestor, gentlemen, was an Indian- an early
- Indian. Your ancestors skinned him alive, and I am an orphan. Not
- one drop of my blood flows in that Indian's veins today. I stand here,
- lone and forlorn, without an ancestor. They skinned him! I do not
- object to that, if they needed his fur; but alive, gentlemen- alive!
- They skinned him alive- and before company! That is what rankles.
- Think how he must have felt; for he was a sensitive person and
- easily embarrassed. If he had been a bird, it would have been all
- right, and no violence done to his feelings, because he would have
- been considered "dressed." But he was not a bird, gentlemen, he was
- a man, and probably one of the most undressed men that ever was. I ask
- you to put yourselves in his place. I ask it as a favor; I ask it as a
- tardy act of justice; I ask it in the interest of fidelity to the
- traditions of your ancestors; I ask it that the world may contemplate,
- with vision unobstructed by disguising swallow-tails and white
- cravats, the spectacle which the true New England Society ought to
- present. Cease to come to these annual orgies in this hollow modern
- mockery- the surplusage of raiment. Come in character; come in the
- summer grace, come in the unadorned simplicity, come in the free and
- joyous costume which your sainted ancestors provided for mine.
- Later ancestors of mine were the Quakers William Robinson, Marmaduke
- Stevenson, et al. Your tribe chased them out of the country for
- their religion's sake; promised them death if they came back; for your
- ancestors had forsaken the homes they loved, and braved the perils
- of the sea, the implacable climate, and the savage wilderness, to
- acquire that highest and most precious of boons, freedom for every man
- on this broad continent to worship according to the dictates of his
- own conscience- and they were not going to allow a lot of
- pestiferous Quakers to interfere with it. Your ancestors broke forever
- the chains of political slavery, and gave the vote to every man in
- this wide land, excluding none!- none except those who did not
- belong to the orthodox church. Your ancestors- yes, they were a hard
- lot; but, nevertheless, they gave us religious liberty to worship as
- they required us to worship, and political liberty to vote as the
- church required; and so I the bereft one, I the forlorn one, am here
- to do my best to help you celebrate them right.
- The Quaker woman Elizabeth Hooton was an ancestress of mine. Your
- people were pretty severe with her- you will confess that. But, poor
- thing! I believe they changed her opinions before she died, and took
- her into their fold; and so we have every reason to presume that
- when she died she went to the same place which your ancestors went to.
- It is a great pity, for she was a good woman. Roger Williams was an
- ancestor of mine. I don't really remember what your people did with
- him. But they banished him to Rhode Island, anyway. And then, I
- believe, recognizing that this was really carrying harshness to an
- unjustifiable extreme, they took pity on him and burned him. They were
- a hard lot! All those Salem witches were ancestors of mine! Your
- people made it tropical for them. Yes, they did; by pressure and the
- gallows they made such a clean deal with them that there hasn't been a
- witch and hardly a halter in our family from that day to this, and
- that is one hundred and eighty-nine years. The first slave brought
- into New England out of Africa by your progenitors was an ancestor
- of mine- for I am of a mixed breed, an infinitely shaded and exquisite
- Mongrel. I'm not one of your sham meerschaums that you can color in
- a week. No, my complexion is the patient art of eight generations.
- Well, in my own time, I had acquired a lot of my kin- by purchase, and
- swapping around, and one way and another- and was getting along very
- well. Then, with the inborn perversity of your lineage, you got up a
- war, and took them all away from me. And so, again am I bereft,
- again am I forlorn; no drop of my blood flows in the veins of any
- living being who is marketable.
- O my friends, hear me and reform! I seek your good, not mine. You
- have heard the speeches. Disband these New England societies-
- nurseries of a system of steadily augmenting laudation and hosannaing,
- which, if persisted in uncurbed, may some day in the remote future
- beguile you into prevaricating and bragging. Oh, stop, stop, while you
- are still temperate in your appreciation of your ancestors! Hear me, I
- beseech you; get up an auction and sell Plymouth Rock! The Pilgrims
- were a simple and ignorant race. They never had seen any good rocks
- before, or at least any that were not watched, and so they were
- excusable for hopping ashore in frantic delight and clapping an iron
- fence around this one. But you, gentlemen, are educated; you are
- enlightened; you know that in the rich land of your nativity,
- opulent New England, overflowing with rocks, this one isn't worth,
- at the outside, more than thirty-five cents. Therefore, sell it,
- before it is injured by exposure, or at least throw it open to the
- patent-medicine advertisements, and let it earn its taxes.
- Yes, hear your true friend- your only true friend- list to his
- voice. Disband these societies, hotbeds of vice, of moral decay-
- perpetuators of ancestral superstition. Here on this board I see
- water, I see milk, I see the wild and deadly lemonade. These are but
- steps upon the downward path. Next we shall see tea, then chocolate,
- then coffee- hotel coffee. A few more years- all too few, I fear- mark
- my words, we shall have cider! Gentlemen, pause ere it be too late.
- You are on the broad road which leads to dissipation, physical ruin,
- moral decay, gory crime and the gallows! I beseech you, I implore you,
- in the name of your anxious friends, in the name of your suffering
- families, in the name of your impending widows and orphans, stop ere
- it be too late. Disband these New England societies, renounce these
- soul-blistering saturnalia, cease from varnishing the rusty
- reputations of your long-vanished ancestors- the super-high-moral
- old iron-clads of Cape Cod, the pious buccaneers of Plymouth Rock-
- go home, and try to learn to behave!
- However, chaff and nonsense aside, I think I honor and appreciate
- your Pilgrim stock as much as you do yourselves, perhaps; and I
- endorse and adopt a sentiment uttered by a grandfather of mine once- a
- man of sturdy opinions, of sincere make of mind, and not given to
- flattery. He said: "People may talk as they like about that Pilgrim
- stock, but, after all's said and done, it would be pretty hard to
- improve on those people; and, as for me, I don't mind coming out
- flat-footed and saying there ain't any way to improve on them-
- except having them born in Missouri!"
- COMPLIMENTS AND DEGREES.
-
- DELIVERED AT THE LOTOS CLUB, JANUARY 11, 1908.
-
- In introducing Mr. Clemens, Frank R. Lawrence, the President of
- the Lotos Club, recalled the fact that the first club dinner in the
- present club-house, some fourteen years ago, was in honor of Mark
- Twain.
-
- I WISH to begin this time at the beginning, lest I forget it
- altogether; that is to say, I wish to thank you for this welcome
- that you are giving, and the welcome which you gave me seven years
- ago, and which I forgot to thank you for at that time. I also wish
- to thank you for the welcome you gave me fourteen years ago, which I
- also forgot to thank you for at the time.
- I hope you will continue this custom to give me a dinner every seven
- years before I join the hosts in the other world- I do not know
- which world.
- Mr. Lawrence and Mr. Porter have paid me many compliments. It is
- very difficult to take compliments. I do not care whether you
- deserve the compliments or not, it is just as difficult to take
- them. The other night I was at the Engineers' Club, and enjoyed the
- sufferings of Mr. Carnegie. They were complimenting him there; there
- it was all compliments, and none of them deserved. They say that you
- cannot live by bread alone, but I can live on compliments.
- I do not make any pretence that I dislike compliments. The
- stronger the better, and I can manage to digest them. I think I have
- lost so much by not making a collection of compliments, to put them
- away and take them out again once in a while. When in England I said
- that I would start to collect compliments, and I began there and I
- have brought some of them along.
- The first one of these lies- I wrote them down and preserved them- I
- think they are mighty good and extremely just. It is one of Hamilton
- Mabie's compliments. He said that La Salle was the first one to make a
- voyage of the Mississippi, but Mark Twain was the first to chart,
- light, and navigate it for the whole world.
- If that had been published at the time that I issued that book [Life
- on the Mississippi], it would have been money in my pocket. I tell
- you, it is a talent by itself to pay compliments gracefully and have
- them ring true. It's an art by itself.
- Here is another compliment by Albert Bigelow Paine, my biographer.
- He is writing four octavo volumes about me, and he has been at my
- elbow two and one-half years.
- I just suppose that he does not know me, but says he knows me. He
- says "Mark Twain is not merely a great writer, a great philosopher,
- a great man; he is the supreme expression of the human being, with his
- strength and his weakness." What a talent for compression! It takes
- a genius in compression to compact as many facts as that.
- W. D. Howells spoke of me as first of Hartford, and ultimately of
- the solar system, not to say of the universe.
- You know how modest Howells is. If it can be proved that my fame
- reaches to Neptune and Saturn, that will satisfy even me. You know how
- modest and retiring Howells seems to be, but deep down he is as vain
- as I am.
- Mr. Howells had been granted a degree at Oxford, whose gown was red.
- He had been invited to an exercise at Columbia, and upon inquiry had
- been told that it was usual to wear the black gown. Later he had found
- that three other men wore bright gowns, and he had lamented that he
- had been one of the black mass, and not a red torch.
- Edison wrote: "The average American loves his family. If he has
- any love left over for some other person, he generally selects Mark
- Twain."
- Now here's the compliment of a little Montana girl which came to
- me indirectly. She was in a room in which there was a large photograph
- of me. After gazing at it steadily for a time, she said:
- "We've got a John the Baptist like that." She also said: "Only
- ours has more trimmings."
- I suppose she meant the halo. Now here is a gold-miner's compliment.
- It is forty-two years old. It was my introduction to an audience to
- which I lectured in a log school-house. There were no ladies there.
- I wasn't famous then. They didn't know me. Only the miners were there,
- with their breeches tucked into their boot-tops and with clay all over
- them. They wanted some one to introduce me, and they selected a miner,
- who protested, saying:
- "I don't know anything about this man. Anyhow, I only know two
- things about him. One is, he has never been in jail, and the other is,
- I don't know why."
- There's one thing I want to say about that English trip. I knew
- his Majesty the King of England long years ago, and I didn't meet
- him for the first time then. One thing that I regret was that some
- newspapers said I talked with the Queen of England with my hat on. I
- don't do that with any woman. I did not put it on until she asked me
- to. Then she told me to put it on, and it's a command there. I thought
- I had carried my American democracy far enough. So I put it on. I have
- no use for a hat, and never did have.
- Who was it who said that the police of London knew me? Why, the
- police know me everywhere. There never was a day over there when a
- policeman did not salute me, and then put up his hand and stop the
- traffic of the world. They treated me as though I were a duchess.
- The happiest experience I had in England was at a dinner given in
- the building of the Punch publication, a humorous paper which is
- appreciated by all Englishmen. It was the greatest privilege ever
- allowed a foreigner. I entered the dining-room of the building,
- where those men get together who have been running the paper for
- over fifty years. We were about to begin dinner when the toastmaster
- said: "Just a minute; there ought to be a little ceremony." Then there
- was that meditating silence for a while, and out of a closet there
- came a beautiful little girl dressed in pink, holding in her hand a
- copy of the previous week's paper, which had in it my cartoon. It
- broke me all up. I could not even say "Thank you." That was the
- prettiest incident of the dinner, the delight of all that wonderful
- table. When she was about to go, I said, "My child, you are not
- going to leave me; I have hardly got acquainted with you." She
- replied, "You know I've got to go; they never let me come in here
- before, and they never will again." That is one of the beautiful
- incidents that I cherish.
-
- [At the conclusion of his speech, and while the diners were still
- cheering him, Colonel Porter brought forward the red-and-gray gown
- of the Oxford "doctor," and Mr. Clemens was made to don it. The diners
- rose to their feet in their enthusiasm. With the mortar-board on his
- head, and looking down admiringly at himself, Mr. Twain said:]
- I like that gown. I always did like red. The redder it is the better
- I like it. I was born for a savage. Now, whoever saw any red like
- this? There is no red outside the arteries of an archangel that
- could compare with this. I know you all envy me. I am going to have
- luncheon shortly with ladies- just ladies. I will be the only lady
- of my sex present, and I shall put on this gown and make those
- ladies look dim.
- BOOKS, AUTHORS, AND HATS.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE PILGRIMS' CLUB LUNCHEON, GIVEN
- IN HONOR OF MR. CLEMENS AT THE SAVOY
- HOTEL, LONDON, JUNE 25, 1907.
-
- Mr. Birrell, M.P., Chief-Secretary for Ireland, in introducing Mr.
- Clemens said: "We all love Mark Twain, and we are here to tell him so.
- One more point- all the world knows it, and that is why it is
- dangerous to omit it- our guest is a distinguished citizen of the
- Great Republic beyond the seas. In America his Huckleberry Finn and
- his Tom Sawyer are what Robinson Crusoe and Tom Brown's School Days
- have been to us. They are racy of the soil. They are books to which it
- is impossible to place any period of termination. I will not speak
- of the classics- reminiscences of much evil in our early lives. We
- do not meet here to-day as critics with our appreciations and
- depreciations, our two-penny little prefaces or our forewords. I am
- not going to say what the world a thousand years hence will think of
- Mark Twain. Posterity will take care of itself, will read what it
- wants to read, will forget what it chooses to forget, and will pay
- no attention whatsoever to our critical mumblings and jumblings. Let
- us therefore be content to say to our friend and guest that we are
- here speaking for ourselves and for our children, to say what he has
- been to us. I remember in Liverpool, in 1867, first buying the copy,
- which I still preserve, of the celebrated Jumping Frog. It had a few
- words of preface which reminded me then that our guest in those days
- was called 'the wild humorist of the Pacific slope,' and a few lines
- later down, 'the moralist of the Main.' That was some forty years ago.
- Here he is, still the humorist, still the moralist. His humor enlivens
- and enlightens his morality, and his morality is all the better for
- his humor. That is one of the reasons why we love him. I am not here
- to mention any book of his- that is a subject of dispute in my
- family circle, which is the best and which is the next best- but I
- must put in a word, lest I should not be true to myself- a terrible
- thing- for his Joan of Arc, a book of chivalry, of nobility, and of
- manly sincerity for which I take this opportunity of thanking him. But
- you can all drink this toast, each one of you with his own
- intention. You can get into it what meaning you like. Mark Twain is
- a man whom English and Americans do well to honor. He is the true
- consolidator of nations. His delightful humor is of the kind which
- dissipates and destroys national prejudices. His truth and his
- honor, his love of truth, and his love of honor, overflow all
- boundaries. He has made the world better by his presence. We rejoice
- to see him here. Long may he live to reap the plentiful harvest of
- hearty, honest human affection!"
-
- PILGRIMS, I desire first to thank those undergraduates of Oxford.
- When a man has grown so old as I am, when he has reached the verge
- of seventy-two years, there is nothing that carries him back to the
- dreamland of his life, to his boyhood, like recognition of those young
- hearts up yonder. And so I thank them out of my heart. I desire to
- thank the Pilgrims of New York also for their kind notice and
- message which they have cabled over here. Mr. Birrell says he does not
- know how he got here. But he will be able to get away all right- he
- has not drunk anything since he came here. I am glad to know about
- those friends of his, Otway and Chatterton- fresh, new names to me.
- I am glad of the disposition he has shown to rescue them from the
- evils of poverty, and if they are still in London, I hope to have a
- talk with them. For a while I thought he was going to tell us the
- effect which my book had upon his growing manhood. I thought he was
- going to tell us how much that effect amounted to, and whether it
- really made him what he now is, but with the discretion born of
- Parliamentary experience he dodged that, and we do not know now
- whether he read the book or not. He did that very neatly. I could
- not do it any better myself.
- My books have had effects, and very good ones, too, here and
- there, and some others not so good. There is no doubt about that.
- But I remember one monumental instance of it years and years ago.
- Professor Norton, of Harvard, was over here, and when he came back
- to Boston I went out with Howells to call on him. Norton was allied in
- some way by marriage with Darwin. Mr. Norton was very gentle in what
- he had to say, and almost delicate, and he said: "Mr. Clemens, I
- have been spending some time with Mr. Darwin in England, and I
- should like to tell you something connected with that visit. You
- were the object of it, and I myself would have been very proud of
- it, but you may not be proud of it. At any rate, I am going to tell
- you what it was, and to leave to you to regard it as you please. Mr.
- Darwin took me up to his bedroom and pointed out certain things there-
- pitcher-plants, and so on, that he was measuring and watching from day
- to day- and he said: 'The chambermaid is permitted to do what she
- pleases in this room, but she must never touch those plants and
- never touch those books on that table by that candle. With those books
- I read myself to sleep every night.' Those were your own books." I
- said: "There is no question to my mind as to whether I should regard
- that as a compliment or not. I do regard it as a very great compliment
- and a very high honor that that great mind, laboring for the whole
- human race, should rest itself on my books. I am proud that he
- should read himself to sleep with them."
- Now, I could not keep that to myself- I was so proud of it. As
- soon as I got home to Hartford I called up my oldest friend- and
- dearest enemy on occasion- the Rev. Joseph Twichell, my pastor, and
- I told him about that, and, of course, he was full of interest and
- venom. Those people who get no compliments like that feel like that.
- He went off. He did not issue any applause of any kind, and I did
- not hear of that subject for some time. But when Mr. Darwin passed
- away from this life, and some time after Darwin's Life and Letters
- came out, the Rev. Mr. Twichell procured an early copy of that work
- and found something in it which he considered applied to me. He came
- over to my house- it was snowing, raining, sleeting, but that did
- not make any difference to Twichell. He produced the book, and
- turned over and over, until he came to a certain place, when he
- said: "Here, look at this letter from Mr. Darwin to Sir Joseph
- Hooker." What Mr. Darwin said- I give you the idea and not the very
- words- was this: I do not know whether I ought to have devoted my
- whole life to these drudgeries in natural history and the other
- sciences or not, for while I may have gained in one way I have lost in
- another. Once I had a fine perception and appreciation of high
- literature, but in me that quality is atrophied. "That was the
- reason," said Mr. Twichell, "he was reading your books."
- Mr. Birrell has touched lightly- very lightly, but in not an
- uncomplimentary way- on my position in this world as a moralist. I
- am glad to have that recognition, too, because I have suffered since I
- have been in this town; in the first place, right away, when I came
- here, from a newsman going around with a great red, highly displayed
- placard in the place of an apron. He was selling newspapers, and there
- were two sentences on that placard which would have been all right
- if they had been punctuated; but they ran those two sentences together
- without a comma or anything, and that would naturally create a wrong
- impression, because it said, "Mark Twain arrives Ascot Cup stolen." No
- doubt many a person was misled by those sentences joined together in
- that unkind way. I have no doubt my character has suffered from it.
- I suppose I ought to defend my character, but how can I defend it? I
- can say here and now- and anybody can see by my face that I am
- sincere, that I speak the truth- that I have never seen that Cup. I
- have not got the Cup- I did not have a chance to get it. I have always
- had a good character in that way. I have hardly ever stolen
- anything, and if I did steal anything I had discretion enough to
- know about the value of it first. I do not steal things that are
- likely to get myself into trouble. I do not think any of us do that. I
- know we all take things- that is to be expected- but really, I have
- never taken anything, certainly in England, that amounts to any
- great thing. I do confess that when I was here seven years ago I stole
- a hat, but that did not amount to anything. It was not a good hat, and
- was only a clergyman's hat, anyway.
- I was at a luncheon party, and Archdeacon Wilberforce was there
- also. I dare say he is Archdeacon now- he was a canon then- and he was
- serving in the Westminster battery, if that is the proper term- I do
- not know, as you mix military and ecclesiastical things together so
- much. He left the luncheon table before I did. He began this. I did
- steal his hat, but he began by taking mine. I make that interjection
- because I would not accuse Archdeacon Wilberforce of stealing my
- hat- I should not think of it. I confine that phrase to myself. He
- merely took my hat. And with good judgment, too- it was a better hat
- than his. He came out before the luncheon was over, and sorted the
- hats in the hall, and selected one which suited. It happened to be
- mine. He went off with it. When I came out by-and-by there was no
- hat there which would go on my head except his, which was left behind.
- My head was not the customary size just at that time. I had been
- receiving a good many very nice and complimentary attentions, and my
- head was a couple of sizes larger than usual, and his hat just
- suited me. The bumps and corners were all right intellectually.
- There were results pleasing to me- possibly so to him. He found out
- whose hat it was, and wrote me saying it was pleasant that all the way
- home, whenever he met anybody his gravities, his solemnities, his deep
- thoughts, his eloquent remarks were all snatched up by the people he
- met, and mistaken for brilliant humorisms.
- I had another experience. It was not unpleasing. I was received with
- a deference which was entirely foreign to my experience by everybody
- whom I met, so that before I got home I had a much higher opinion of
- myself than I have ever had before or since. And there is in that very
- connection an incident which I remember at that old date which is
- rather melancholy to me, because it shows how a person can deteriorate
- in a mere seven years. It is seven years ago. I have not that hat now.
- I was going down Pall-Mall, or some other of your big streets, and I
- recognized that that hat needed ironing. I went into a big shop and
- passed in my hat, and asked that it might be ironed. They were
- courteous, very courteous, even courtly. They brought that hat back to
- me presently very sleek and nice, and I asked how much there was to
- pay. They replied that they did not charge the clergy anything. I have
- cherished the delight of that moment from that day to this. It was the
- first thing I did the other day to go and hunt up that shop and hand
- in my hat to have it ironed. I said when it came back, "How much to
- pay?" They said, "Ninepence." In seven years I have acquired all
- that worldliness, and I am sorry to be back where I was seven years
- ago.
- But now I am chaffing and chaffing and chaffing here, and I hope you
- will forgive me for that; but when a man stands on the verge of
- seventy-two you know perfectly well that he never reached that place
- without knowing what this life is- heartbreaking bereavement. And so
- our reverence is for our dead. We do not forget them; but our duty
- is toward the living; and if we can be cheerful, cheerful in spirit,
- cheerful in speech and in hope, that is a benefit to those who are
- around us.
- My own history includes an incident which will always connect me
- with England in a pathetic way, for when I arrived here seven years
- ago with my wife and my daughter- we had gone around the globe
- lecturing to raise money to clear off a debt- my wife and one of my
- daughters started across the ocean to bring to England our eldest
- daughter. She was twenty-four years of age and in the bloom of young
- womanhood, and we were unsuspecting. When my wife and daughter- and my
- wife has passed from this life since- when they had reached
- mid-atlantic, a cablegram- one of those heartbreaking cablegrams which
- we all in our days have to experience- was put into my hand. It stated
- that that daughter of ours had gone to her long sleep. And so, as I
- say, I cannot always be cheerful, and I cannot always be chaffing; I
- must sometimes lay the cap and bells aside, and recognize that I am of
- the human race like the rest, and must have my cares and griefs. And
- therefore I noticed what Mr. Birrell said- I was so glad to hear him
- say it- something that was in the nature of these verses here at the
- top of this:
-
- "He lit our life with shafts of sun
- And vanquished pain.
- Thus two great nations stand as one
- In honoring Twain."
-
- I am very glad to have those verses. I am very glad and very
- grateful for what Mr. Birrell said in that connection. I have received
- since I have been here, in this one week, hundreds of letters from all
- conditions of people in England- men, women, and children- and there
- is in them compliment, praise, and, above all and better than all,
- there is in them a note of affection. Praise is well, compliment is
- well, but affection- that is the last and final and most precious
- reward that any man can win, whether by character or achievement,
- and I am very grateful to have that reward. All these letters make
- me feel that here in England- as in America- when I stand under the
- English flag, I am not a stranger. I am not an alien, but at home.
- DEDICATION SPEECH.
-
- AT THE DEDICATION OF THE COLLEGE OF THE
- CITY OF NEW YORK, MAY 14, 1908.
-
- Mr. Clemens wore his gown as Doctor of Laws, Oxford University.
- Ambassador Bryce and Mr. Choate had made the formal addresses.
-
- HOW difficult indeed, is the higher education. Mr. Choate needs a
- little of it. He is not only short as a statistician of New York,
- but he is off, far off, in his mathematics. The four thousand citizens
- of Greater New York, indeed!
- But I don't think it was wise or judicious on the part of Mr. Choate
- to show this higher education he has obtained. He sat in the lap of
- that great education (I was there at the time), and see the result-
- the lamentable result. Maybe if he had had a sandwich here to
- sustain him the result would not have been so serious.
- For seventy-two years I have been striving to acquire that higher
- education which stands for modesty and diffidence, and it doesn't
- work.
- And then look at Ambassador Bryce, who referred to his alma mater,
- Oxford. He might just as well have included me. Well, I am a later
- production.
- If I am the latest graduate, I really and sincerely hope I am not
- the final flower of its seven centuries; I hope it may go on for seven
- ages longer.
- DIE SCHRECKEN DER DEUTSCHEN SPRACHE
-
- ADDRESS TO THE VIENNA PRESS CLUB, NOVEMBER 21, 1897,
- AS DELIVERED IN GERMAN
-
- ES hat mich tief geruhrt, meine Herren, hier so gastfreundlich
- empfangen zu werden, von Kollegen aus meinem eigenen Berufe, in diesem
- von meiner eigenen Heimath so weit entferntem Lande. Mein Herz ist
- voller Dankbarkeit, aber meine Armuth an deutschen Worten zwingt
- mich zu groszer Sparzamkeit des Ausdruckes. Entschuldigen Sie, meine
- Herren, dasz ich verlese, was ich Ihnen sagen will. (Er las aber
- nicht, Anm. d. Ref.) Die deutsche Sprache spreche ich nicht gut,
- doch haben mehrere Sachverstandige mich versichert, dasz ich sie
- schreibe wie ein Engel. Mag sein- ich weisz nicht. Habe bis jetzt
- keine Bekanntschaften mit Engeln gehabt. Das kommt spater- wenn's
- dem lieben Gott gefallt- es hat keine Eile.
- Seit lange, meine Herren, habe ich die leidenschaftliche Sehnsucht
- gehegt, eine Rede auf Deutsch zu halten, aber man hat mir's nie
- erlauben wollen. Leute, die kein Gefuhl fur die Kunst hatten, legten
- mir immer Hindernisse in den Weg und vereitelten meinen Wunsch-
- zuweilen durch Vorwande, haufig durch Gewalt. Immer sagten diese Leute
- zu mir: "Schweigen Sie, Ew. Hochwohlgeboren! Ruhe, um Gotteswillen!
- Suche eine andere Art und Weise, Dich lastig zu machen."
- Im jetzigen Fall, wie gewohnlich, ist es mir schwierig geworden, mir
- die Erlaubnisz zu verschaffen. Das Comite bedauerte sehr, aber es
- konnte mir die Erlaubnisz nicht bewilligen wegen eines Gesetzes, das
- von der Concordia verlangt, sie soll die deutsche Sprache schnutzen.
- Du liebe Zeit! Wieso hatte man mir das sagen konnen- mogen- durfen-
- sollen? Ich bin ja der treueste Freund der deutschen Sprache- und
- nicht nur jetzt, sondern von lange her- ja vor zwanzig Jahren schon.
- Und nie habe ich das Verlangen gehabt, der edlen Sprache zu schaden,
- im Gegentheil, nur gewunscht, sie zu verbessern; ich wollte sie blos
- reformiren. Es ist der Traum meines Lebens gewesen. Ich habe schon
- Besuche bei den verschiedenen deutschen Regierungen abgestattet und um
- Kontrakte gebeten. Ich bin jetzt nach Oesterreich in demselben Auftrag
- gekommen. Ich wurde nur einige Aenderungen anstreben. Ich wurde blos
- die Sprachmethode- die uppige, weitschweifige Konstruktion-
- zusammenrucken; die ewige Parenthese unterdrucken, abschaffen,
- vernichten; die Einfuhrung von mehr als dreizehn Subjekten in einen
- Satz verbieten; das Zeitwort so weit nach vorne rucken, bis man es
- ohne Fernrohr entdecken kann. Mit einem Wort, meine Herren, ich mochte
- Ihre geliebte Sprache vereinfachen, auf dasz, meine Herren, wenn Sie
- sie zum Gebet brauchen, man sie dort oben versteht.
- Ich flehe Sie an, von mir sich berathen zu lassen, fuhren Sie
- diese erwahnten Reformen aus. Dann werden Sie eine prachtvolle Sprache
- besitzen und nachher, wenn Sie Etwas sagen wollen, werden Sie
- wenigstens selber verstehen, was Sie gesagt haben. Aber ofters
- heutzutage, wenn Sie einen meilen-langen Satz von sich gegeben und Sie
- sich etwas angelehnt haben, um auszuruhen, dann mussen Sie eine
- ruhrende Neugierde empfinden, selbst herauszubringen, was Sie
- eigentlich gesprochen haben. Vor mehreren Tagen hat der
- Korrespondent einer hiesigen Zeitung einen Satz zustande gebracht
- welcher hundertundzwolf Worte enthielt und darin waren sieben
- Parenthese eingeschachtelt und es wurde Das Subjekt siebenmal
- gewechselt. Denken Sie nur, meine Herren, im Laufe der Reise eines
- einzigen Satzes musz das arme, verfolgte, ermudete Subjekt siebenmal
- umsteigen.
- Nun, wenn wir die erwahnten Reformen ausfuhren, wird's nicht mehre
- so arg sein. Doch noch eins. Ich mochte gern das trennbare Zeitwort
- auch ein Bischen reformiren. Ich mochte Niemand thun lassen, was
- Schiller gethan: Der hat die ganze Geschichte des dreizigjahrigen
- Krieges zwischen die zwei Glieder eines trennbaren Zeitwortes
- eingezwangt. Das hat sogar Deutschland selbst emport; und man hat
- Schiller die Erlaubnisz verweigert, die Geschichte des hundert
- Jahrigen Krieges zu verfassen- Gott sei's gedankt. Nachdem alle
- diese Reformen festgestellt sein werden, wird die deutsche Sprache die
- edelste und die schonste auf der Welt sein.
- Da Ihnen jetzt, meine Herren, der Charackter meiner Mission
- bekannt ist, bitte ich Sie, so freundlich zu sein und mir Ihre
- werthvolle Hilfe zu schenken. Herr Potzl hat das Publikum glauben
- machen wollen, dasz ich nach Wien gekommen bin, um die Brucken zu
- verstopfen und den Verkehr zu hindern, wahrend ich Beobachtungen
- sammle und aufzeichne. Lassen Sie sich aber nicht von ihm anfuhren.
- Meine haufige Anwesenheit auf den Brucken hat einen ganz
- unschuldigen Grund. Dort giebt's den nothigen Raum. Dort kann man
- einen edlen, langen, deutschen Satz ausdehnen, die Bruckengelander
- entlang, und seinen ganzen Inhalt mit einem Blick ubersehen. Auf das
- eine Ende des Gelanders klebe ich das erste Glied eines trennbaren
- Zeitwortes und das Schluszglied klebe ich an's andere Ende- dann
- breite ich den Leib des Satzes dazwischen aus. Gewohnlich sind fur
- meinen Zweck die Brucken der Stadt lang genug: wenn ich aber Potzl's
- Schriften studiren will, fahre ich hinaus und benutze die herrliche
- unendliche Reichsbrucke. Aber das ist eine Verleumdung. Potzl schreibt
- das schonste Deutsch. Vielleicht nicht so biegsam wie das meinige,
- aber in manchen Kleinigkeiten viel besser. Entschuldigen Sie diese
- Schmeicheleien. Die sind wohl verdient. Nun bringe ich meine Rede
- um- nein- ich wollte sagen, ich bringe sie zum Schlusz. Ich bin ein
- Fremder- aber hier, unter Ihnen, habe ich es ganz vergessen. Und so,
- wieder, und noch wieder- biete ich Ihnen meinen herzlichsten Dank!
- HORRORS OF THE GERMAN LANGUAGE.
-
- ADDRESS TO THE VIENNA PRESS CLUB, NOVEMBER 21, 1897
-
- [A LITERAL TRANSLATION].
-
- IT has me deeply touched, my gentlemen, here so hospitably
- received to be. From colleagues out of my own profession, in this from
- my own home so far distant land. My heart is full of gratitude, but my
- poverty of German words forces me to greater economy of expression.
- Excuse you, my gentlemen, that I read off, what I you say will. [But
- he didn't read].
-
- The German language speak I not good, but have numerous connoisseurs
- me assured that I her write like an angel. Maybe- maybe- I know not.
- Have till now no acquaintance with the angels had. That comes later-
- when it the dear God please- it has no hurry.
-
- Since long, my gentlemen, have I the passionate longing nursed a
- speech on German to hold, but one has me not permitted. Men, who no
- feeling for the art had, laid me ever hindrance in the way and made
- naught my desire- sometimes by excuses, often by force. Always said
- these men to me: "Keep you still, your Highness! Silence! For God's
- sake seek another way and means yourself obnoxious to make."
-
- In the present case, as usual it is me difficult become, for me
- the permission to obtain. The committee sorrowed deeply, but could
- me the permission not grant on account of a law which from the
- Concordia demands she shall the German language protect. Du liebe
- Zeit! How so had one to me this say could- might- dared- should? I
- am indeed the truest friend of the German language- and not only
- now, but from long since- yes, before twenty years already. And
- never have I the desire had the noble language to hurt; to the
- contrary, only wished she to improve- I would her only reform. It is
- the dream of my life been. I have already visits by the various German
- governments paid and for contracts prayed. I am now to Austria in
- the same task come. I would only some changes effect. I would only the
- language method- the luxurious, elaborate construction compress, the
- eternal parenthesis suppress, do away with, annihilate; the
- introduction of more than thirteen subjects in one sentence forbid;
- the verb so far to the front pull that one it without a telescope
- discover can. With one word, my gentlemen, I would your beloved
- language simplify so that, my gentlemen, when you her for prayer need,
- One her yonder-up understands.
-
- I beseech you, from me yourself counsel to let, execute these
- mentioned reforms. Then will you an elegant language possess, and
- afterward, when you some thing say will, will you at least yourself
- understand what you said had. But often nowadays, when you a mile-long
- sentence from you given and you yourself somewhat have rested, then
- must you have a touching inquisitiveness have yourself to determine
- what you actually spoken have. Before several days has the
- correspondent of a local paper a sentence constructed which hundred
- and twelve words contain, and therein were seven parentheses
- smuggled in, and the subject seven times changed. Think you only, my
- gentlemen, in the course of the voyage of a single sentence must the
- poor, persecuted, fatigued subject seven times change position!
-
- Now, when we the mentioned reforms execute, will it no longer so bad
- be. Doch noch eins. I might gladly the separable verb also a little
- bit reform. I might none do let what Schiller did: he has the whole
- history of the Thirty Years' War between the two members of a
- separable verb in-pushed. That has even Germany itself aroused, and
- one has Schiller the permission refused the History of the Hundred
- Years' War to compose- God be it thanked! After all these reforms
- established be will, will the German language the noblest and the
- prettiest on the world be.
-
- Since to you now, my gentlemen, the character of my mission known
- is, beseech I you so friendly to be and to me your valuable help
- grant. Mr. Potzl has the public believed make would that I to Vienna
- come am in order the bridges to clog up and the traffic to hinder,
- while I observations gather and note. Allow you yourselves but not
- from him deceived. My frequent presence on the bridges has an entirely
- innocent ground. Yonder gives it the necessary space, yonder can one a
- noble long German sentence elaborate, the bridge-railing along, and
- his whole contents with one glance overlook. On the one end of the
- railing pasted I the first member of a separable verb and the final
- member cleave I to the other end- then spread the body of the sentence
- between it out! Usually are for my purposes the bridges of the city
- long enough; when I but Potzl's writings study will I ride out and use
- the glorious endless imperial bridge. But this is a calumny; Potzl
- writes the prettiest German. Perhaps not so pliable as the mine, but
- in many details much better. Excuse you these flatteries. These are
- well deserved.
-
- Now I my speech execute- no, I would say I bring her to the close. I
- am a foreigner- but here, under you, have I it entirely forgotten. And
- so again and yet again proffer I you my heartiest thanks.
- GERMAN FOR THE HUNGARIANS.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE JUBILEE CELEBRATION OF THE
- EMANCIPATION OF THE HUNGARIAN PRESS,
- MARCH 26, 1899.
-
- The Ministry and members of Parliament were present. The subject was
- the "Ausgleich"- i. e., the arrangement for the apportionment of the
- taxes between Hungary and Austria. Paragraph 14 of the ausgleich fixes
- the proportion each country must pay to the support of the army. It is
- the paragraph which caused the trouble and prevented its renewal.
-
- NOW that we are all here together, I think it will be a good idea to
- arrange the ausgleich. If you will act for Hungary I shall be quite
- willing to act for Austria, and this is the very time for it. There
- couldn't be a better, for we are all feeling friendly, fair-minded,
- and hospitable now, and full of admiration for each other, full of
- confidence in each other, full of the spirit of welcome, full of the
- grace of forgiveness, and the disposition to let bygones be bygones.
- Let us not waste this golden, this beneficent, this providential
- opportunity. I am willing to make any concession you want, just so
- we get it settled. I am not only willing to let grain come in free,
- I am willing to pay the freight on it, and you may send delegates to
- the Reichsrath if you like. All I require is that they shall be quiet,
- peaceable people like your own deputies, and not disturb our
- proceedings.
- If you want the
- Gegenseitigengeldbeitragendenverhaltnismassigkeiten rearranged and
- readjusted I am ready for that. I will let you off at twenty-eight per
- cent.- twenty-seven- even twenty-five if you insist, for there is
- nothing illiberal about me when I am out on a diplomatic debauch.
- Now, in return for these concessions, I am willing to take
- anything in reason, and I think we may consider the business settled
- and the ausgleich ausgegloschen at last for ten solid years, and we
- will sign the papers in blank, and do it here and now.
- Well, I am unspeakably glad to have that ausgleich off my hands.
- It has kept me awake nights for anderthalbjahr.
- But I never could settle it before, because always when I called
- at the Foreign Office in Vienna to talk about it, there wasn't anybody
- at home, and that is not a place where you can go in and see for
- yourself whether it is a mistake or not, because the person who
- takes care of the front door there is of a size that discourages
- liberty of action and the free spirit of investigation. To think the
- ausgleich is abgemacht at last! It is a grand and beautiful
- consummation, and I am glad I came.
- The way I feel now I do honestly believe I would rather be just my
- own humble self at this moment than paragraph 14.
- A NEW GERMAN WORD.
-
- To aid a local charity Mr. Clemens appeared before a fashionable
- audience in Vienna, March 10, 1899, reading his sketch "The Lucerne
- Girl," and describing how he had been interviewed and ridiculed. He
- said in part:
-
- I HAVE not sufficiently mastered German to allow my using it with
- impunity. My collection of fourteen-syllable German words is still
- incomplete. But I have just added to that collection a jewel- a
- veritable jewel. I found it in a telegram from Linz, and it contains
- ninety-five letters:
-
- Personaleinkommensteuerschatzungskommissionsmitgliedsreisekosten-
- rechnungserganzungsrevisionsfund
-
- If I could get a similar word engraved upon my tombstone I should
- sleep beneath it in peace.
- UNCONSCIOUS PLAGIARISM.
-
- DELIVERED AT THE DINNER GIVEN BY THE PUBLISHERS OF
- "THE ATLANTIC MONTHLY" TO OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES
- IN HONOR OF HIS SEVENTIETH BIRTHDAY,
- AUGUST 29, 1879.
-
- I WOULD have travelled a much greater distance than I have come to
- witness the paying of honors to Doctor Holmes; for my feeling toward
- him has always been one of peculiar warmth. When one receives a letter
- from a great man for the first time in his life, it is a large event
- to him, as all of you know by your own experience. You never can
- receive letters enough from famous men afterward to obliterate that
- one, or dim the memory of the pleasant surprise it was, and the
- gratification it gave you. Lapse of time cannot make it commonplace or
- cheap.
- Well, the first great man who ever wrote me a letter was our
- guest- Oliver Wendell Holmes. He was also the first great literary man
- I ever stole anything from- and that is how I came to write to him and
- he to me. When my first book was new, a friend of mine said to me,
- "The dedication is very neat." Yes, I said, I thought it was. My
- friend said, "I always admired it, even before I saw it in The
- Innocents Abroad." I naturally said: "What do you mean? Where did
- you ever see it before?" "Well, I saw it first some years ago as
- Doctor Holmes's dedication to his Songs in Many Keys." Of course, my
- first impulse was to prepare this man's remains for burial, but upon
- reflection I said I would reprieve him for a moment or two and give
- him a chance to prove his assertion if he could. We stepped into a
- book-store, and he did prove it. I had really stolen that
- dedication, almost word for word. I could not imagine how this curious
- thing had happened; for I knew one thing- that a certain amount of
- pride always goes along with a teaspoonful of brains, and that this
- pride protects a man from deliberately stealing other people's
- ideas. That is what a teaspoonful of brains will do for a man- and
- admirers had often told me I had nearly a basketful- though they
- were rather reserved as to the size of the basket.
- However, I thought the thing out, and solved the mystery. Two
- years before, I had been laid up a couple of weeks in the Sandwich
- Islands, and had read and re-read Doctor Holmes's poems till my mental
- reservoir was filled up with them to the brim. The dedication lay on
- the top, and handy, so, by-and-by, I unconsciously stole it. Perhaps I
- unconsciously stole the rest of the volume, too, for many people
- have told me that my book was pretty poetical, in one way or
- another. Well, of course, I wrote Doctor Holmes and told him I
- hadn't meant to steal, and he wrote back and said in the kindest way
- that it was all right and no harm done; and added that he believed
- we all unconsciously worked over ideas gathered in reading and
- hearing, imagining they were original with ourselves. He stated a
- truth, and did it in such a pleasant way, and salved over my sore spot
- so gently and so healingly, that I was rather glad I had committed the
- crime, for the sake of the letter. I afterward called on him and
- told him to make perfectly free with any ideas of mine that struck him
- as being good protoplasm for poetry. He could see by that that there
- wasn't anything mean about me; so we got along right from the start. I
- have not met Doctor Holmes many times since; and lately he said-
- However, I am wandering wildly away from the one thing which I got
- on my feet to do; that is, to make my compliments to you, my
- fellow-teachers of the great public, and likewise to say that I am
- right glad to see that Doctor Holmes is still in his prime and full of
- generous life; and as age is not determined by years, but by trouble
- and infirmities of mind and body, I hope it may be a very long time
- yet before any one can truthfully say, "He is growing old."
- THE WEATHER.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE NEW ENGLAND SOCIETY'S SEVENTY-FIRST
- ANNUAL DINNER, NEW YORK CITY.
-
- The next toast was: "The Oldest Inhabitant- The Weather of New
- England."
- Who can lose it and forget it?
- Who can have it and regret it?
-
- "Be interposer 'twixt us Twain."
- -Merchant of Venice.
-
- I REVERENTLY believe that the Maker who made us all makes everything
- in New England but the weather. I don't know who makes that, but I
- think it must be raw apprentices in the weather-clerk's factory who
- experiment and learn how, in New England, for board and clothes, and
- then are promoted to make weather for countries that require a good
- article, and will take their custom elsewhere if they don't get it.
- There is a sumptuous variety about the New England weather that
- compels the stranger's admiration- and regret. The weather is always
- doing something there; always attending strictly to business; always
- getting up new designs and trying them on the people to see how they
- will go. But it gets through more business in spring than in any other
- season. In the spring I have counted one hundred and thirty-six
- different kinds of weather inside of four-and-twenty hours. It was I
- that made the fame and fortune of that man that had that marvellous
- collection of weather on exhibition at the Centennial, that so
- astounded the foreigners. He was going to travel all over the world
- and get specimens from all the climes. I said, "Don't you do it; you
- come to New England on a favorable spring day." I told him what we
- could do in the way of style, variety, and quantity. Well, he came and
- he made his collection in four days. As to variety, why, he
- confessed that he got hundreds of kinds of weather that he had never
- heard of before. And as to quantity- well, after he had picked out and
- discarded all that was blemished in any way, he not only had weather
- enough, but weather to spare; weather to hire out; weather to sell; to
- deposit; weather to invest; weather to give to the poor. The people of
- New England are by nature patient and forbearing, but there are some
- things which they will not stand. Every year they kill a lot of
- poets for writing about "Beautiful Spring." These are generally casual
- visitors, who bring their notions of spring from somewhere else, and
- cannot, of course, know how the natives feel about spring. And so
- the first thing they know the opportunity to inquire how they feel has
- permanently gone by. Old Probabilities has a mighty reputation for
- accurate prophecy, and thoroughly well deserves it. You take up the
- paper and observe how crisply and confidently he checks off what
- to-day's weather is going to be on the Pacific, down South, in the
- Middle States, in the Wisconsin region. See him sail along in the
- joy and pride of his power till he gets to New England, and then see
- his tail drop. He doesn't know what the weather is going to be in
- New England. Well, he mulls over it, and by-and-by he gets out
- something about like this: Probably northeast to southwest winds,
- varying to the southward and westward and eastward, and points
- between, high and low barometer swapping around from place to place;
- probable areas of rain, snow, hail, and drought, succeeded or preceded
- by earthquakes, with thunder and lightning. Then he jots down his
- postscript from his wandering mind, to cover accidents. "But it is
- possible that the programme may be wholly changed in the mean time."
- Yes, one of the brightest gems in the New England weather is the
- dazzling uncertainty of it. There is only one thing certain about
- it: you are certain there is going to be plenty of it- a perfect grand
- review; but you never can tell which end of the procession is going to
- move first. You fix up for the drought; you leave your umbrella in the
- house and sally out, and two to one you get drowned. You make up
- your mind that the earthquake is due; you stand from under, and take
- hold of something to steady yourself, and the first thing you know you
- get struck by lightning. These are great disappointments; but they
- can't be helped. The lightning there is peculiar; it is so convincing,
- that when it strikes a thing it doesn't leave enough of that thing
- behind for you to tell whether- Well, you'd think it was something
- valuable, and a Congressman had been there. And the thunder. When
- the thunder begins to merely tune up and scrape and saw, and key up
- the instruments for the performance, strangers say, "Why, what awful
- thunder you have here!" But when the baton is raised and the real
- concert begins, you'll find that stranger down in the cellar with
- his head in the ash-barrel. Now as to the size of the weather in New
- England- lengthways, I mean. It is utterly disproportioned to the size
- of that little country. Half the time, when it is packed as full as it
- can stick, you will see that New England weather sticking out beyond
- the edges and projecting around hundreds and hundreds of miles over
- the neighboring States. She can't hold a tenth part of her weather.
- You can see cracks all about where she has strained herself trying
- to do it. I could speak volumes about the inhuman perversity of the
- New England weather, but I will give but a single specimen. I like
- to hear rain on a tin roof. So I covered part of my roof with tin,
- with an eye to that luxury. Well, sir, do you think it ever rains on
- that tin? No, sir; skips it every time. Mind, in this speech I have
- been trying merely to do honor to the New England weather- no language
- could do it justice. But, after all, there is at least one or two
- things about that weather (or, if you please, effects produced by
- it) which we residents would not like to part with. If we hadn't our
- bewitching autumn foliage, we should still have to credit the
- weather with one feature which compensates for all its bullying
- vagaries- the ice-storm: when a leafless tree is clothed with ice from
- the bottom to the top- ice that is as bright and clear as crystal;
- when every bough and twig is strung with ice-beads, frozen
- dew-drops, and the whole tree sparkles cold and white, like the Shah
- of Persia's diamond plume. Then the wind waves the branches and the
- sun comes out and turns all those myriads of beads and drops to prisms
- that glow and burn and flash with all manner of colored fires, which
- change and change again with inconceivable rapidity from blue to
- red, from red to green, and green to gold- the tree becomes a spraying
- fountain, a very explosion of dazzling jewels; and it stands there the
- acme, the climax, the supremest possibility in art or nature, of
- bewildering, intoxicating, intolerable magnificence. One cannot make
- the words too strong.
- THE BABIES.
-
- DELIVERED AT THE BANQUET, IN CHICAGO, GIVEN
- BY THE ARMY OF THE TENNESSEE TO THEIR
- FIRST COMMANDER GENERAL U. S.
- GRANT, NOVEMBER, 1879.
-
- The fifteenth regular toast was "The Babies.- As they comfort us
- in our sorrows, let us not forget them in our festivities."
-
- I LIKE that. We have not all had the good fortune to be ladies. We
- have not all been generals, or poets, or statesmen; but when the toast
- works down to the babies, we stand on common ground. It is a shame
- that for a thousand years the world's banquets have utterly ignored
- the baby, as if he didn't amount to anything. If you will stop and
- think a minute- if you will go back fifty or one hundred years to your
- early married life and recontemplate your first baby- you will
- remember that he amounted to a good deal, and even something over. You
- soldiers all know that when that little fellow arrived at family
- headquarters you had to hand in your resignation. He took entire
- command. You became his lackey, his mere body-servant, and you had
- to stand around too. He was not a commander who made allowances for
- time, distance, weather, or anything else. You had to execute his
- order whether it was possible or not. And there was only one form of
- marching in his manual of tactics, and that was the double-quick. He
- treated you with every sort of insolence and disrespect, and the
- bravest of you didn't dare to say a word. You could face the
- death-storm at Donelson and Vicksburg, and give back blow for blow;
- but when he clawed your whiskers, and pulled your hair, and twisted
- your nose, you had to take it. When the thunders of war were
- sounding in your ears you set your faces toward the batteries, and
- advanced with steady tread; but when he turned on the terrors of his
- war-whoop you advanced in the other direction, and mighty glad of
- the chance, too. When he called for soothing-syrup, did you venture to
- throw out any side-remarks about certain services being unbecoming
- an officer and a gentleman? No. You got up and got it. When he ordered
- his pap bottle and it was not warm, did you talk back? Not you. You
- went to work and warmed it. You even descended so far in your menial
- office as to take a suck at that warm, insipid stuff yourself, to
- see if it was right- three parts water to one of milk, a touch of
- sugar to modify the colic, and a drop of peppermint to kill those
- immortal hiccoughs. I can taste that stuff yet. And how many things
- you learned as you went along! Sentimental young folks still take
- stock in that beautiful old saying that when the baby smiles in his
- sleep, it is because the angels are whispering to him. Very pretty,
- but too thin- simply wind on the stomach, my friends. If the baby
- proposed to take a walk at his usual hour, two o'clock in the morning,
- didn't you rise up promptly and remark, with a mental addition which
- would not improve a Sunday-school book much, that that was the very
- thing you were about to propose yourself? Oh! you were under good
- discipline, and as you went fluttering up and down the room in your
- undress uniform, you not only prattled undignified baby-talk, but even
- tuned up your martial voices and tried to sing!- Rock-a-by Baby in the
- Tree-top, for instance. What a spectacle for an Army of the Tennessee!
- And what an affliction for the neighbors, too; for it is not everybody
- within a mile around that likes military music at three in the
- morning. And when you had been keeping this sort of thing up two or
- three hours, and your little velvet-head intimated that nothing suited
- him like exercise and noise, what did you do? You simply went on until
- you dropped in the last ditch. The idea that a baby doesn't amount
- to anything! Why, one baby is just a house and a front yard full by
- itself. One baby can furnish more business than you and your whole
- Interior Department can attend to. He is enterprising, irrepressible,.
- brimful of lawless activities. Do what you please, you can't make
- him stay on the reservation. Sufficient unto the day is one baby. As
- long as you are in your right mind don't you ever pray for twins.
- Twins amount to a permanent riot. And there ain't any real
- difference between triplets and an insurrection.
- Yes, it was high time for a toast-master to recognize the importance
- of the babies. Think what is in store for the present crop! Fifty
- years from now we shall all be dead, I trust, and then this flag, if
- it still survive (and let us hope it may), will be floating over a
- Republic numbering 200,000,000 souls, according to the settled laws of
- our increase. Our present schooner of State will have grown into a
- political leviathan- a Great Eastern. The cradled babies of to-day
- will be on deck. Let them be well trained, for we are going to leave a
- big contract on their hands. Among the three or four million cradles
- now rocking in the land are some which this nation would preserve
- for ages as sacred things, if we could know which ones they are. In
- one of these cradles the unconscious Farragut of the future is at this
- moment teething- think of it!- and putting in a world of dead earnest,
- unarticulated, but perfectly justifiable profanity over it, too. In
- another the future renowned astronomer is blinking at the shining
- Milky Way with but a languid interest- poor little chap!- and
- wondering what has become of that other one they call the wet-nurse.
- In another the future great historian is lying- and doubtless will
- continue to lie until his earthly mission is ended. In another the
- future President is busying himself with no profounder problem of
- state than what the mischief has become of his hair so early; and in a
- mighty array of other cradles there are now some 60,000 future
- office-seekers, getting ready to furnish him occasion to grapple
- with that same old problem a second time. And in still one more
- cradle, somewhere under the flag, the future illustrious
- commander-in-chief of the American armies is so little burdened with
- his approaching grandeurs and responsibilities as to be giving his
- whole strategic mind at this moment to trying to find out some way
- to get his big toe into his mouth- an achievement which, meaning no
- disrespect, the illustrious guest of this evening turned his entire
- attention to some fifty-six years ago; and if the child is but a
- prophecy of the man, there are mighty few who will doubt that he
- succeeded.
- OUR CHILDREN AND GREAT DISCOVERIES.
-
- DELIVERED AT THE AUTHORS' CLUB, NEW YORK.
-
- OUR children- yours-and-mine. They seem like little things to talk
- about- our children, but little things often make up the sum of
- human life- that's a good sentence. I repeat it, little things often
- produce great things. Now, to illustrate, take Sir Isaac Newton- I
- presume some of you have heard of Mr. Newton. Well, once when Sir
- Isaac Newton- a mere lad- got over into the man's apple orchard- I
- don't know what he was doing there- I didn't come all the way from
- Hartford to q-u-e-s-t-i-o-n Mr. Newton's honesty- but when he was
- there- in the main orchard- he saw an apple fall and he was
- a-t-t-racted toward it, and that led to the discovery- not of Mr.
- Newton- but of the great law of attraction and gravitation.
- And there was once another great discoverer- I've forgotten his
- name, and I don't remember what he discovered, but I know it was
- something very important, and I hope you will all tell your children
- about it when you get home. Well, when the great discoverer was once
- loafin' around down in Virginia, and a-puttin' in his time flirting
- with Pocahontas- oh! Captain John Smith, that was the man's name-
- and while he and Poca were sitting in Mr. Powhatan's garden, he
- accidentally put his arm around her and picked something- a simple
- weed, which proved to be tobacco- and now we find it in every
- Christian family, shedding its civilizing influence broadcast
- throughout the whole religious community.
- Now there was another great man, I can't think of his name either,
- who used to loaf around and watch the great chandelier in the
- cathedral at Pisa, which set him to thinking about the great law of
- gunpowder, and eventually led to the discovery of the cotton-gin.
- Now, I don't say this as an inducement for our young men to loaf
- around like Mr. Newton and Mr. Galileo and Captain Smith, but they
- were once little babies two days old, and they show what little things
- have sometimes accomplished.
- EDUCATING THEATRE-GOERS.
-
- The children of the Educational Alliance gave a performance of
- "The Prince and the Pauper" on the afternoon of April 14, 1907, in the
- theatre of the Alliance Building in East Broadway. The audience was
- composed of nearly one thousand children of the neighborhood. Mr.
- Clemens, Mr. Howells, and Mr. Daniel Frohman were among the invited
- guests.
-
- I HAVE not enjoyed a play so much, so heartily, and so thoroughly
- since I played Miles Hendon twenty-two years ago. I used to play in
- this piece ("The Prince and the Pauper") with my children, who,
- twenty-two years ago, were little youngsters. One of my daughters
- was the Prince, and a neighbor's daughter was the Pauper, and the
- children of other neighbors played other parts. But we never gave such
- a performance as we have seen here to-day. It would have been beyond
- us.
- My late wife was the dramatist and stage-manager. Our coachman was
- the stage-manager, second in command. We used to play it in this
- simple way, and the one who used to bring in the crown on a cushion-
- he was a little fellow then- is now a clergyman way up high- six or
- seven feet high- and growing higher all the time. We played it well,
- but not as well as you see it here, for you see it done by practically
- trained professionals.
- I was especially interested in the scene which we have just had, for
- Miles Hendon was my part. I did it as well as a person could who never
- remembered his part. The children all knew their parts. They did not
- mind if I did not know mine. I could thread a needle nearly as well as
- the player did whom you saw to-day. The words of my part I could
- supply on the spot. The words of the song that Miles Hendon sang
- here I did not catch. But I was great in that song.
- [Then Mr. Clemens hummed a bit of doggerel that the reporter made
- out as this:
-
- "There was a woman in her town,
- She loved her husband well,
- But another man just twice as well."
-
- "How is that?" demanded Mr. Clemens. Then resuming:]
- It was so fresh and enjoyable to make up a new set of words each
- time that I played the part.
- If I had a thousand citizens in front of me, I would like to give
- them information, but you children already know all that I have
- found out about the Educational Alliance. It's like a man living
- within thirty miles of Vesuvius and never knowing about a volcano.
- It's like living for a lifetime in Buffalo, eighteen miles from
- Niagara, and never going to see the Falls. So I had lived in New
- York and knew nothing about the Educational Alliance.
- This theatre is a part of the work, and furnishes pure and clean
- plays. This theatre is an influence. Everything in the world is
- accomplished by influences which train and educate. When you get to be
- seventy-one and a half, as I am, you may think that your education
- is over, but it isn't.
- If we had forty theatres of this kind in this city of four millions,
- how they would educate and elevate! We should have a body of
- educated theatre-goers.
- It would make better citizens, honest citizens. One of the best
- gifts a millionaire could make would be a theatre here and a theatre
- there. It would make of you a real Republic, and bring about an
- educational level.
- THE EDUCATIONAL THEATRE.
-
- On November 19, 1907, Mr. Clemens entertained a party of six or
- seven hundred of his friends, inviting them to witness the
- representation of "The Prince and the Pauper," played by boys and
- girls of the East Side at the Children's Educational Theatre, New
- York.
-
- JUST a word or two to let you know how deeply I appreciate the honor
- which the children who are the actors and frequenters of this cozy
- playhouse have conferred upon me. They have asked me to be their
- ambassador to invite the hearts and brains of New York to come down
- here and see the work they are doing. I consider it a grand
- distinction to be chosen as their intermediary. Between the children
- and myself there is an indissoluble bond of friendship.
- I am proud of this theatre and this performance- proud, because I am
- naturally vain- vain of myself and proud of the children.
- I wish we could reach more children at one time. I am glad to see
- that the children of the East Side have turned their backs on the
- Bowery theatres to come to see the pure entertainments presented here.
- This Children's Theatre is a great educational institution. I hope
- the time will come when it will be part of every public school in
- the land. I may be pardoned in being vain. I was born vain, I guess.
- [At this point the stage-manager's whistle interrupted Mr. Clemens.]
- That settles it; there's my cue to stop. I was to talk until the
- whistle blew, but it blew before I got started. It takes me longer
- to get started than most people. I guess I was born at slow speed.
- My time is up, and if you'll keep quiet for two minutes I'll tell
- you something about Miss Herts, the woman who conceived this
- splendid idea. She is the originator and the creator of this
- theatre. Educationally, this institution coins the gold of young
- hearts into external good.
-
- [On April 23, 1908, he spoke again at the same place]
-
- I will be strictly honest with you; I am only fit to be honorary
- president. It is not to be expected that I should be useful as a
- real president. But when it comes to things ornamental I, of course,
- have no objection. There is, of course, no competition. I take it as a
- very real compliment because there are thousands of children who
- have had a part in this request. It is promotion in truth.
- It is a thing worth doing that is done here. You have seen the
- children play. You saw how little Sally reformed her burglar. She
- could reform any burglar. She could reform me. This is the only school
- in which can be taught the highest and most difficult lessons- morals.
- In other schools the way of teaching morals is revolting. Here the
- children who come in thousands live through each part.
- They are terribly anxious for the villain to get his bullet, and
- that I take to be a humane and proper sentiment. They spend freely the
- ten cents that is not saved without a struggle. It comes out of the
- candy money, and the money that goes for chewing-gum and other
- necessaries of life. They make the sacrifice freely. This is the
- only school which they are sorry to leave.
- POETS AS POLICEMEN.
-
- Mr. Clemens was one of the speakers at the Lotos Club dinner to
- Governor Odell, March 24, 1900. The police problem was referred to
- at length.
-
- LET us abolish policemen who carry clubs and revolvers, and put in a
- squad of poets armed to the teeth with poems on Spring and Love. I
- would be very glad to serve as commissioner, not because I think I
- am especially qualified, but because I am too tired to work and
- would like to take a rest.
- Howells would go well as my deputy. He is tired too, and needs a
- rest badly.
- I would start in at once to elevate, purify, and depopulate the
- red-light district. I would assign the most soulful poets to that
- district, all heavily armed with their poems. Take Chauncey Depew as a
- sample. I would station them on the corners after they had rounded
- up all the depraved people of the district so they could not escape,
- and then have them read from their poems to the poor unfortunates. The
- plan would be very effective in causing an emigration of the
- depraved element.
- PUDD'NHEAD WILSON DRAMATIZED.
-
- When Mr. Clemens arrived from Europe in 1895 one of the first things
- he did was to see the dramatization of Pudd'nhead Wilson. The audience
- becoming aware of the fact that Mr. Clemens was in the house called
- upon him for a speech.
-
- NEVER in my life have I been able to make a speech without
- preparation, and I assure you that this position in which I find
- myself is one totally unexpected.
- I have been hemmed in all day by William Dean Howells and other
- frivolous persons, and I have been talking about everything in the
- world except that of which speeches are constructed. Then, too,
- seven days on the water is not conducive to speech-making. I will only
- say that I congratulate Mr. Mayhew; he has certainly made a delightful
- play out of my rubbish. His is a charming gift. Confidentially I
- have always had an idea that I was well equipped to write plays, but I
- have never encountered a manager who has agreed with me.
- DALY THEATRE.
-
- ADDRESS AT A DINNER AFTER THE ONE HUNDREDTH
- PERFORMANCE OF "THE TAMING OF THE SHREW."
-
- Mr. Clemens made the following speech, which he incorporated
- afterward in Following the Equator.
-
- I AM glad to be here. This is the hardest theatre in New York to get
- into, even at the front door. I never got in without hard work. I am
- glad we have got so far in at last. Two or three years ago I had an
- appointment to meet Mr. Daly on the stage of this theatre at eight
- o'clock in the evening. Well, I got on a train at Hartford to come
- to New York and keep the appointment. All I had to do was to come to
- the back door of the theatre on Sixth Avenue. I did not believe
- that; I did not believe it could be on Sixth Avenue, but that is
- what Daly's note said- come to that door, walk right in, and keep
- the appointment. It looked very easy. It looked easy enough, but I had
- not much confidence in the Sixth Avenue door.
- Well, I was kind of bored on the train, and I bought some
- newspapers- New Haven newspapers- and there was not much news in them,
- so I read the advertisements. There was one advertisement of a
- bench-show. I had heard of bench-shows, and I often wondered what
- there was about them to interest people. I had seen bench-shows-
- lectured to bench-shows, in fact- but I didn't want to advertise
- them or to brag about them. Well, I read on a little, and learned that
- a bench-show was not a bench-show- but dogs, not benches at all-
- only dogs. I began to be interested, and as there was nothing else
- to do I read every bit of the advertisement, and learned that the
- biggest thing in this show was a St. Bernard dog that weighed one
- hundred and forty-five pounds. Before I got to New York I was so
- interested in the bench-shows that I made up my mind to go to one
- the first chance I got. Down on Sixth Avenue, near where that back
- door might be, I began to take things leisurely. I did not like to
- be in too much of a hurry. There was not anything in sight that looked
- like a back door. The nearest approach to it was a cigar store. So I
- went in and bought a cigar, not too expensive, but it cost enough to
- pay for any information I might get and leave the dealer a fair
- profit. Well, I did not like to be too abrupt, to make the man think
- me crazy, by asking him if that was the way to Daly's Theatre, so I
- started gradually to lead up to the subject, asking him first if
- that was the way to Castle Garden. When I got to the real question,
- and he said he would show me the way, I was astonished. He sent me
- through a long hallway, and I found myself in a back yard. Then I went
- through a long passageway and into a little room, and there before
- my eyes was a big St. Bernard dog lying on a bench. There was
- another door beyond and I went there, and was met by a big, fierce man
- with a fur cap on and coat off, who remarked, "Phwat do yez want?" I
- told him I wanted to see Mr. Daly. "Yez can't see Mr. Daly this time
- of night," he responded. I urged that I had an appointment with Mr.
- Daly, and gave him my card, which did not seem to impress him much.
- "Yez can't get in and yez can't shmoke here. Throw away that cigar. If
- yez want to see Mr. Daly, yez'll have to be after going to the front
- door and buy a ticket, and then if yez have luck and he's around
- that way yez may see him." I was getting discouraged, but I had one
- resource left that had been of good service in similar emergencies.
- Firmly but kindly I told him my name was Mark Twain, and I awaited
- results. There was none. He was not fazed a bit. "Phwere's your
- order to see Mr. Daly?" he asked. I handed him the note, and he
- examined it intently. "My friend," I remarked, "you can read that
- better if you hold it the other side up." But he took no notice of the
- suggestion, and finally asked: "Where's Mr. Daly's name?" "There it
- is," I told him, "on the top of the page." "That's all right," he
- said, "that's where he always puts it; but I don't see the 'W' in
- his name," and he eyed me distrustfully. Finally he asked, "Phwat do
- yez want to see Mr. Daly for?" "Business." "Business?" "Yes." It was
- my only hope. "Pwhat kind- theatres?" That was too much. "No." "What
- kind of shows, then?" "Bench-shows." It was risky, but I was
- desperate. "Bench-shows, is it- where?" The big man's face changed,
- and he began to look interested. "New Haven." "New Haven, it is? Ah,
- that's going to be a fine show. I'm glad to see you. Did you see a big
- dog in the other room?" "Yes." "How much do you think that dog
- weighs?" "One hundred and forty-five pounds." "Look at that, now! He's
- a good judge of dogs, and no mistake. He weighs all of one hundred and
- thirty-eight. Sit down and shmoke- go on and shmoke your cigar, I'll
- tell Mr. Daly you are here." In a few minutes I was on the stage
- shaking hands with Mr. Daly, and the big man standing around glowing
- with satisfaction. "Come around in front," said Mr. Daly, "and see the
- performance. I will put you into my own box." And as I moved away I
- heard my honest friend mutter, "Well, he desarves it."
- THE DRESS OF CIVILIZED WOMAN.
-
- A LARGE part of the daughter of civilization is her dress- as it
- should be. Some civilized women would lose half their charm without
- dress, and some would lose all of it. The daughter of modern
- civilization dressed at her utmost best is a marvel of exquisite and
- beautiful art and expense. All the lands, all the climes, and all
- the arts are laid under tribute to furnish her forth. Her linen is
- from Belfast, her robe is from Paris, her lace is from Venice, or
- Spain, or France, her feathers are from the remote regions of Southern
- Africa, her furs from the remoter region of the iceberg and the
- aurora, her fan from Japan, her diamonds from Brazil, her bracelets
- from California, her pearls from Ceylon, her cameos from Rome. She has
- gems and trinkets from buried Pompeii, and others that graced comely
- Egyptian forms that have been dust and ashes now for forty
- centuries. Her watch is from Geneva, her card-case is from China,
- her hair is from- from- I don't know where her hair is from; I never
- could find out; that is, her other hair- her public hair, her Sunday
- hair; I don't mean the hair she goes to bed with....
- And that reminds me of a trifle. Any time you want to you can glance
- around the carpet of a Pullman car, and go and pick up a hair-pin; but
- not to save your life can you get any woman in that car to acknowledge
- that hair-pin. Now, isn't that strange? But it's true. The woman who
- has never swerved from cast-iron veracity and fidelity in her whole
- life will, when confronted with this crucial test, deny her
- hair-pin. She will deny that hair-pin before a hundred witnesses. I
- have stupidly got into more trouble and more hot water trying to
- hunt up the owner of a hair-pin in a Pullman than by any other
- indiscretion of my life.
-
- DRESS REFORM AND COPYRIGHT.
-
- When the present copyright law was under discussion, Mr. Clemens
- appeared before the committee. He had sent Speaker Cannon the
- following letter:
-
- "DEAR UNCLE JOSEPH,- Please get me the thanks of Congress, not
- next week but right away. It is very necessary. Do accomplish this for
- your affectionate old friend right away- by persuasion if you can,
- by violence if you must, for it is imperatively necessary that I get
- on the floor of the House for two or three hours and talk to the
- members, man by man, in behalf of support, encouragement, and
- protection of one of the nation's most valuable assets and industries-
- its literature. I have arguments with me- also a barrel with liquid in
- it.
- "Give me a chance. Get me the thanks of Congress. Don't wait for
- others- there isn't time; furnish them to me yourself and let Congress
- ratify later. I have stayed away and let Congress alone for
- seventy-one years and am entitled to the thanks. Congress knows this
- perfectly well, and I have long felt hurt that this quite proper and
- earned expression of gratitude has been merely felt by the House and
- never publicly uttered.
- "Send me an order on the sergeant-at-arms quick. When shall I come?
- "With love and a benediction,
- "MARK TWAIN."
-
- While waiting to appear before the committee, Mr. Clemens talked
- to the reporters:
-
- WHY don't you ask why I am wearing such apparently unseasonable
- clothes? I'll tell you. I have found that when a man reaches the
- advanced age of seventy-one years, as I have, the continual sight of
- dark clothing is likely to have a depressing effect upon him.
- Light-colored clothing is more pleasing to the eye and enlivens the
- spirit. Now, of course, I cannot compel every one to wear such
- clothing just for my especial benefit, so I do the next best thing and
- wear it myself.
- Of course, before a man reaches my years the fear of criticism might
- prevent him from indulging his fancy. I am not afraid of that. I am
- decidedly for pleasing color combinations in dress. I like to see
- the women's clothes, say, at the opera. What can be more depressing
- than the sombre black which custom requires men to wear upon state
- occasions? A group of men in evening clothes looks like a flock of
- crows, and is just about as inspiring.
- After all, what is the purpose of clothing? Are not clothes intended
- primarily to preserve dignity and also to afford comfort to their
- wearer? Now I know of nothing more uncomfortable than the
- present-day clothes of men. The finest clothing made is a person's own
- skin, but, of course, society demands something more than this.
- The best-dressed man I have ever seen, however, was a native of
- the Sandwich Islands who attracted my attention thirty years ago. Now,
- when that man wanted to don especial dress to honor a public
- occasion or a holiday, why, he occasionally put on a pair of
- spectacles. Otherwise the clothing with which God had provided him
- sufficed.
- Of course, I have ideas of dress reform. For one thing, why not
- adopt some of the women's styles? Goodness knows, they adopt enough of
- ours. Take the peek-a-boo waist, for instance. It has the obvious
- advantages of being cool and comfortable, and in addition it is almost
- always made up in pleasing colors which cheer and do not depress.
- It is true that I dressed the Connecticut Yankee at King Arthur's
- Court in a plug-hat, but, let's see, that was twenty-five years ago.
- Then no man was considered fully dressed until he donned a plug-hat.
- Nowadays I think that no man is dressed until he leaves it home.
- Why, when I left home yesterday they trotted out a plug-hat for me
- to wear.
- "You must wear it," they told me; "why, just think of going to
- Washington without a plug-hat!" But I said no; I would wear a derby or
- nothing. Why, I believe I could walk along the streets of New York-
- I never do- but still I think I could- and I should never see a
- well-dressed man wearing a plug-hat. If I did I should suspect him
- of something. I don't know just what, but I would suspect him.
- Why, when I got up on the second story of that Pennsylvania
- ferry-boat coming down here yesterday I saw Howells coming along. He
- was the only man on the boat with a plug-hat, and I tell you he felt
- ashamed of himself. He said he had been persuaded to wear it against
- his better sense. But just think of a man nearly seventy years old who
- has not a mind of his own on such matters!
- "Are you doing any work now?" the youngest and most serious reporter
- asked.
- Work? I retired from work on my seventieth birthday. Since then I
- have been putting in merely twenty-six hours a day dictating my
- autobiography, which, as John Phoenix said in regard to his autograph,
- may be relied upon as authentic, as it is written exclusively by me.
- But it is not to be published in full until I am thoroughly dead. I
- have made it as caustic, fiendish, and devilish as possible. It will
- fill many volumes, and I shall continue writing it until the time
- comes for me to join the angels. It is going to be a terrible
- autobiography. It will make the hair of some folks curl. But it cannot
- be published until I am dead, and the persons mentioned in it and
- their children and grand-children are dead. It is something awful!
- "Can you tell us the names of some of the notables that are here
- to see you off?"
- I don't know. I am so shy. My shyness takes a peculiar phase. I
- never look a person in the face. The reason is that I am afraid they
- may know me and that I may not know them, which makes it very
- embarrassing for both of us. I always wait for the other person to
- speak. I know lots of people, but I don't know who they are. It is all
- a matter of ability to observe things. I never observe anything now. I
- gave up the habit years ago. You should keep a habit up if you want to
- become proficient in it. For instance, I was a pilot once, but I
- gave it up, and I do not believe the captain of the Minneapolis
- would let me navigate his ship to London. Still, if I think that he is
- not on the job I may go up on the bridge and offer him a few
- suggestions.
- COLLEGE GIRLS.
-
- Five hundred undergraduates, under the auspices of the Woman's
- University Club, New York, welcomed Mr. Clemens as their guest,
- April 3, 1906, and gave him the freedom of the club, which the
- chairman explained was freedom to talk individually to any girl
- present.
-
- I'VE worked for the public good thirty years, so for the rest of
- my life I shall work for my personal contentment. I am glad Miss Neron
- has fed me, for there is no telling what iniquity I might wander
- into on an empty stomach- I mean, an empty mind.
- I am going to tell you a practical story about how once upon a
- time I was blind- a story I should have been using all these months,
- but I never thought about telling it until the other night, and now it
- is too late, for on the nineteenth of this month I hope to take formal
- leave of the platform forever at Carnegie Hall- that is, take leave so
- far as talking for money and for people who have paid money to hear me
- talk. I shall continue to infest the platform on these conditions-
- that there is nobody in the house who has paid to hear me, that I am
- not paid to be heard, and that there will be none but young women
- students in the audience. [Here Mr. Clemens told the story of how he
- took a girl to the theatre while he was wearing tight boots, which
- appears elsewhere in this volume, and ended by saying: "And now let
- this be a lesson to you- I don't know what kind of a lesson; I'll
- let you think it out."]
- GIRLS
- GIRLS.
-
- IN my capacity of publisher I recently received a manuscript from
- a teacher which embodied a number of answers given by her pupils to
- questions propounded. These answers show that the children had nothing
- but the sound to go by- the sense was perfectly empty. Here are some
- of their answers to words they were asked to define: Auriferous-
- pertaining to an orifice; ammonia- the food of the gods; equestrian-
- one who asks questions; parasite- a kind of umbrella; ipecac- a man
- who likes a good dinner. And here is the definition of an ancient word
- honored by a great party: Republican- a sinner mentioned in the Bible.
- And here is an innocent deliverance of a zoological kind: "There are a
- good many donkeys in the theological gardens." Here also is a
- definition which really isn't very bad in its way: Demagogue- a vessel
- containing beer and other liquids. Here, too, is a sample of a boy's
- composition on girls, which, I must say, I rather like:
- "Girls are very stuckup and dignified in their manner and
- behaveyour. They think more of dress than anything and like to play
- with dowls and rags. They cry if they see a cow in a far distance
- and are afraid of guns. They stay at home all the time and go to
- church every Sunday. They are al-ways sick. They are al-ways funy
- and making fun of boys hands and they say how dirty. They cant play
- marbles. I pity them poor things. They make fun of boys and then
- turn round and love them. I don't belave they ever killed a cat or
- anything. They look out every nite and say, 'Oh, a'nt the moon
- lovely!' Thir is one thing I have not told and that is they al-ways
- now their lessons bettern boys."
- THE LADIES.
-
- DELIVERED AT THE ANNIVERSARY FESTIVAL, 1872,
- OF THE SCOTTISH CORPORATION OF LONDON
-
- Mr. Clemens replied to the toast "The Ladies."
-
- I AM proud, indeed, of the distinction of being chosen to respond to
- this especial toast, to "The Ladies," or to women if you please, for
- that is the preferable term, perhaps; it is certainly the older, and
- therefore the more entitled to reverence. I have noticed that the
- Bible, with that plain, blunt honesty which is such a conspicuous
- characteristic of the Scriptures, is always particular to never
- refer to even the illustrious mother of all mankind as a "lady," but
- speaks of her as a woman. It is odd, but you will find it is so. I
- am peculiarly proud of this honor, because I think that the toast to
- women is one which, by right and by every rule of gallantry, should
- take precedence of all others- of the army, of the navy, of even
- royalty itself- perhaps, though the latter is not necessary in this
- day and in this land, for the reason that, tacitly, you do drink a
- broad general health to all good women when you drink the health of
- the Queen of England and the Princess of Wales. I have in mind a
- poem just now which is familiar to you all, familiar to everybody. And
- what an inspiration that was, and how instantly the present toast
- recalls the verses to all our minds when the most noble, the most
- gracious, the purest, and sweetest of all poets says:
-
- "Woman! O woman!- er-
- Wom-"
-
- However, you remember the lines; and you remember how feelingly, how
- daintily, how almost imperceptibly the verses raise up before you,
- feature by feature, the ideal of a true and perfect woman; and how, as
- you contemplate the finished marvel, your homage grows into worship of
- the intellect that could create so fair a thing out of mere breath,
- mere words. And you call to mind now, as I speak, how the poet, with
- stern fidelity to the history of all humanity, delivers this beautiful
- child of his heart and his brain over to the trials and sorrows that
- must come to all, sooner or later, that abide in the earth, and how
- the pathetic story culminates in that apostrophe- so wild, so
- regretful, so full of mournful retrospection. The lines run thus:
-
- "Alas!- alas!- a- alas!
- --Alas!---- alas!"
-
- - and so on. I do not remember the rest; but, taken together, it seems
- to me that poem is the noblest tribute to woman that human genius
- has ever brought forth- and I feel that if I were to talk hours I
- could not do my great theme completer or more graceful justice than
- I have now done in simply quoting that poet's matchless words. The
- phases of the womanly nature are infinite in their variety. Take any
- type of woman, and you shall find in it something to respect,
- something to admire, something to love. And you shall find the whole
- joining you heart and hand. Who was more patriotic than Joan of Arc?
- Who was braver? Who has given us a grander instance of
- self-sacrificing devotion? Ah! you remember, you remember well, what a
- throb of pain, what a great tidal wave of grief swept over us all when
- Joan of Arc fell at Waterloo. Who does not sorrow for the loss of
- Sappho, the sweet. singer of Israel? Who among us does not miss the
- gentle ministrations, the softening influences, the humble piety of
- Lucretia Borgia? Who can join in the heartless libel that says woman
- is extravagant in dress when he can look back and call to mind our
- simple and lowly mother Eve arrayed in her modification of the
- Highland costume? Sir, women have been soldiers, women have been
- painters, women have been poets. As long as language lives the name of
- Cleopatra will live. And not because she conquered George III.- but
- because she wrote those divine lines:
-
- "Let dogs delight to bark and bite,
- For God hath made them so."
-
- The story of the world is adorned with the names of illustrious ones
- of our own sex- some of them sons of St. Andrew, too- Scott, Bruce,
- Burns, the warrior Wallace, Ben Nevis- the gifted Ben Lomond, and
- the great new Scotchman, Ben Disraeli.* Out of the great plains of
- history tower whole mountain ranges of sublime women- the Queen of
- Sheba, Josephine, Semiramis, Sairey Gamp; the list is endless- but I
- will not call the mighty roll, the names rise up in your own
- memories at the mere suggestion, luminous with the glory of deeds that
- cannot die, hallowed by the loving worship of the good and the true of
- all epochs and all climes. Suffice it for our pride and our honor that
- we in our day have added to it such names as those of Grace Darling
- and Florence Nightingale. Woman is all that she should be- gentle,
- patient, long-suffering, trustful, unselfish, full of generous
- impulses. It is her blessed mission to comfort the sorrowing, plead
- for the erring, encourage the faint of purpose, succor the distressed,
- uplift the fallen, befriend the friendless- in a word, afford the
- healing of her sympathies and a home in her heart for all the
- bruised and persecuted children of misfortune that knock at its
- hospitable door. And when I say, God bless her, there is none among us
- who has known the ennobling affection of a wife, or the steadfast
- devotion of a mother but in his heart will say, Amen!
-
- * Mr. Benjamin Disraeli, at that time Prime Minister of England, had
- just been elected Lord Rector of Glasgow University, and had made a
- speech which gave rise to a world of discussion.
- WOMAN'S PRESS CLUB.
-
- On October 27, 1900, the New York Woman's Press Club gave a tea in
- Carnegie Hall. Mr. Clemens was the guest of honor.
-
- IF I were asked an opinion I would call this an ungrammatical
- nation. There is no such thing as perfect grammar, and I don't
- always speak good grammar myself. But I have been foregathering for
- the past few days with professors of American universities, and I've
- heard them all say things like this: "He don't like to do it."
- [There was a stir.] Oh, you'll hear that to-night if you listen, or,
- "He would have liked to have done it." You'll catch some educated
- Americans saying that. When these men take pen in hand they write with
- as good grammar as any. But the moment they throw the pen aside they
- throw grammatical morals aside with it.
- To illustrate the desirability and possibility of concentration, I
- must tell you a story of my little six-year-old daughter. The
- governess had been teaching her about the reindeer, and, as the custom
- was, she related it to the family. She reduced the history of that
- reindeer to two or three sentences when the governess could not have
- put it into a page. She said: "The reindeer is a very swift animal.
- A reindeer once drew a sled four hundred miles in two hours." She
- appended the comment: "This was regarded as extraordinary." And
- concluded: "When that reindeer was done drawing that sled four hundred
- miles in two hours it died."
- As a final instance of the force of limitations in the development
- of concentration, I must mention that beautiful creature, Helen
- Keller, whom I have known for these many years. I am filled with the
- wonder of her knowledge, acquired because shut out from all
- distraction. If I could have been deaf, dumb, and blind I also might
- have arrived at something.
- VOTES FOR WOMEN.
-
- AT THE ANNUAL MEETING OF THE HEBREW TECHNICAL
- SCHOOL FOR GIRLS, HELD IN THE TEMPLE
- EMMANUEL, JANUARY 20, 1901
-
- Mr. Clemens was introduced by President Meyer, who said: "In one
- of Mr. Clemens's works he expressed his opinion of men, saying he
- had no choice between Hebrew and Gentile, black men or white; to him
- all men were alike. But I never could find that he expressed his
- opinion of women; perhaps that opinion was so exalted that he could
- not express it. We shall now be called to hear what he thinks of
- women."
-
- LADIES AND GENTLEMEN,- It is a small help that I can afford, but
- it is just such help that one can give as coming from the heart
- through the mouth. The report of Mr. Meyer was admirable, and I was as
- interested in it as you have been. Why, I'm twice as old as he, and
- I've had so much experience that I would say to him, when he makes his
- appeal for help: "Don't make it for to-day or to-morrow, but collect
- the money on the spot."
- We are all creatures of sudden impulse. We must be worked up by
- steam, as it were. Get them to write their wills now, or it may be too
- late by-and-by. Fifteen or twenty years ago I had an experience I
- shall never forget. I got into a church which was crowded by a
- sweltering and panting multitude. The city missionary of our town-
- Hartford- made a telling appeal for help. He told of personal
- experiences among the poor in cellars and top lofts requiring
- instances of devotion and help. The poor are always good to the
- poor. When a person with his millions gives a hundred thousand dollars
- it makes a great noise in the world, but he does not miss it; it's the
- widow's mite that makes no noise but does the best work.
- I remember on that occasion in the Hartford church the collection
- was being taken up. The appeal had so stirred me that I could hardly
- wait for the hat or plate to come my way. I had four hundred dollars
- in my pocket, and I was anxious to drop it in the plate and wanted
- to borrow more. But the plate was so long in coming my way that the
- fever-heat of beneficence was going down lower and lower- going down
- at the rate of a hundred dollars a minute. The plate was passed too
- late. When it finally came to me, my enthusiasm had gone down so
- much that I kept my four hundred dollars- and stole a dime from the
- plate. So, you see, time sometimes leads to crime.
- Oh, many a time have I thought of that and regretted it, and I
- adjure you all to give while the fever is on you.
- Referring to woman's sphere in life, I'll say that woman is always
- right. For twenty-five years I've been a woman's rights man. I have
- always believed, long before my mother died, that, with her gray hairs
- and admirable intellect, perhaps she knew as much as I did. Perhaps
- she knew as much about voting as I.
- I should like to see the time come when women shall help to make the
- laws. I should like to see that whip-lash, the ballot, in the hands of
- women. As for this city's government, I don't want to say much, except
- that it is a shame- a shame; but if I should live twenty-five years
- longer- and there is no reason why I shouldn't- I think I'll see women
- handle the ballot. If women had the ballot to-day, the state of things
- in this town would not exist.
- If all the women in this town had a vote to-day they would elect a
- mayor at the next election, and they would rise in their might and
- change the awful state of things now existing here.
- WOMAN- AN OPINION.
-
- ADDRESS AT AN EARLY BANQUET OF THE
- WASHINGTON CORRESPONDENTS' CLUB.
-
- The twelfth toast was as follows: "Woman- The pride of any
- profession, and the jewel of ours."
-
- MR. PRESIDENT,- I do not know why I should be singled out to receive
- the greatest distinction of the evening- for so the office of replying
- to the toast of woman has been regarded in every age. I do not know
- why I have received this distinction, unless it be that I am a
- trifle less homely than the other members of the club. But be this
- as it may, Mr. President, I am proud of the position, and you could
- not have chosen any one who would have accepted it more gladly, or
- labored with a heartier good-will to do the subject justice than I-
- because, sir, I love the sex. I love all the women, irrespective of
- age or color.
- Human intellect cannot estimate what we owe to woman, sir. She
- sews on our buttons; she mends our clothes; she ropes us in at the
- church fairs; she confides in us she tells us whatever she can find
- out about the little private affairs of the neighbors; she gives us
- good advice, and plenty of it; she soothes our aching brows; she bears
- our children- ours as a general thing. In all relations of life,
- sir, it is but a just and graceful tribute to woman to say of her that
- she is a brick.
- Wheresoever you place woman, sir- in whatever position or estate-
- she is an ornament to the place she occupies, and a treasure to the
- world. [Here Mr. Clemens paused, looked inquiringly at his hearers,
- and remarked that the applause should come in at this point. It came
- in. He resumed his eulogy.] Look at Cleopatra!- look at Desdemona!-
- look at Florence Nightingale!- look at Joan of Arc!- look at
- Lucretia Borgia! [Disapprobation expressed.] Well [said Mr. Clemens,
- scratching his head, doubtfully], suppose we let Lucretia slide.
- Look at Joyce Heth!- Look at Mother Eve! You need not look at her
- unless you want to, but [said Mr. Clemens, reflectively, after a
- pause] Eve was ornamental, sir- particularly before the fashions
- changed. I repeat, sir, look at the illustrious names of history. Look
- at the Widow Machree!- Look at Lucy Stone!- look at Elizabeth Cady
- Stanton!- Look at George Francis Train! And, sir, I say it with
- bowed head and deepest veneration- look at the mother of Washington!
- She raised a boy that could not tell a lie- could not tell a lie!
- But he never had any chance. It might have been different if he had
- belonged to the Washington Newspaper Correspondents' Club.
- I repeat, sir, that in whatever position you place a woman she is an
- ornament to society and a treasure to the world. As a sweetheart,
- she has few equals and no superiors; as a cousin, she is convenient;
- as a wealthy grandmother with an incurable distemper, she is precious;
- as a wet-nurse, she has no equal among men.
- What, sir, would the people of the earth be without woman? They
- would be scarce, sir, almighty scarce. Then let us cherish her; let us
- protect her; let us give her our support, our encouragement, our
- sympathy, ourselves- if we get a chance.
- But, jesting aside, Mr. President, woman is lovable, gracious,
- kind of heart, beautiful- worthy of all respect, of all esteem, of all
- deference. Not any here will refuse to drink her health right
- cordially in this bumper of wine, for each and every one has
- personally known, and loved, and honored the very best one of them
- all- his own mother.
- ADVICE TO GIRLS.
-
- In 1907 a young girl whom Mr. Clemens met on the steamer Minnehaha
- called him "grandpa," and he called her his granddaughter. She was
- attending St. Timothy's School, at Catonsville, Maryland, and Mr.
- Clemens promised her to see her graduate. He accordingly made the
- journey from New York on June 10, 1909, and delivered a short address.
-
- I DON'T know what to tell you girls to do. Mr. Martin has told you
- everything you ought to do, and now I must give you some don'ts.
- There are three things which come to my mind which I consider
- excellent advice:
- First, girls, don't smoke- that is, don't smoke to excess. I am
- seventy-three and a half years old, and have been smoking
- seventy-three of them. But I never smoke to excess- that is, I smoke
- in moderation, only one cigar at a time.
- Second, don't drink- that is, don't drink to excess.
- Third, don't marry- I mean, to excess.
- Honesty is the best policy. That is an old proverb; but you don't
- want ever to forget it in your journey through life.
- TAXES AND MORALS.
-
- ADDRESS DELIVERED IN NEW YORK, JANUARY 22, 1906.
-
- At the twenty-fifth anniversary of the founding of Tuskeegee
- Institute by Booker T. Washington, Mr. Choate presided, and in
- introducing Mr. Clemens made fun of him because he made play his work,
- and that when he worked hardest he did so lying in bed.
-
- I CAME here in the responsible capacity of policeman to watch Mr.
- Choate. This is an occasion of grave and serious importance, and it
- seems necessary for me to be present, so that if he tried to work
- off any statement that required correction, reduction, refutation,
- or exposure, there would be a tried friend of the public to protect
- the house. He has not made one statement whose veracity fails to tally
- exactly with my own standard. I have never seen a person improve so.
- This makes me thankful and proud of a country that can produce such
- men- two such men. And all in the same country. We can't be with you
- always; we are passing away, and then- well, everything will have to
- stop, I reckon. It is a sad thought. But in spirit I shall still be
- with you. Choate, too- if he can.
- Every born American among the eighty millions, let his creed or
- destitution of creed be what it may, is indisputably a Christian to
- this degree- that his moral constitution is Christian.
- There are two kinds of Christian morals, one private and the other
- public. These two are so distinct, so unrelated, that they are no more
- akin to each other than are archangels and politicians. During three
- hundred and sixty-three days in the year the American citizen is
- true to his Christian private morals, and keeps undefiled the nation's
- character at its best and highest; then in the other two days of the
- year he leaves his Christian private morals at home and carries his
- Christian public morals to the tax office and the polls, and does
- the best he can to damage and undo his whole year's faithful and
- righteous work. Without a blush he will vote for an unclean boss if
- that boss is his party's Moses, without compunction he will vote
- against the best man in the whole land if he is on the other ticket.
- Every year in a number of cities and States he helps put corrupt men
- in office, whereas if he would but throw away his Christian public
- morals, and carry his Christian private morals to the polls, he
- could promptly purify the public service and make the possession of
- office a high and honorable distinction.
- Once a year he lays aside his Christian private morals and hires a
- ferry-boat and piles up his bonds in a warehouse in New Jersey for
- three days, and gets out his Christian public morals and goes to the
- tax office and holds up his hands and swears he wishes he may never-
- never if he's got a cent in the world, so help him. The next day the
- list appears in the papers- a column and a quarter of names, in fine
- print, and every man in the list a billionaire and member of a
- couple of churches. I know all those people. I have friendly,
- social, and criminal relations with the whole lot of them. They
- never miss a sermon when they are so's to be around, and they never
- miss swearing-off day, whether they are so's to be around or not.
- I used to be an honest man. I am crumbling. No- I have crumbled.
- When they assessed me at $75,000 a fortnight ago I went out and
- tried to borrow the money, and couldn't; then when I found they were
- letting a whole crop of millionaires live in New York at a third of
- the price they were charging me I was hurt, I was indignant, and said:
- "This is the last feather. I am not going to run this town all by
- myself." In that moment- in that memorable moment- I began to crumble.
- In fifteen minutes the disintegration was complete. In fifteen minutes
- I had become just a mere moral sand-pile; and I lifted up my hand
- along with those seasoned and experienced deacons and swore off
- every rag of personal property I've got in the world, clear down to
- cork leg, glass eye, and what is left of my wig.
- Those tax officers were moved; they were profoundly moved. They
- had long been accustomed to seeing hardened old grafters act like
- that, and they could endure the spectacle; but they were expecting
- better things of me, a chartered, professional moralist, and they were
- saddened.
- I fell visibly in their respect and esteem, and I should have fallen
- in my own, except that I had already struck bottom, and there wasn't
- any place to fall to.
- At Tuskeegee they will jump to misleading conclusions from
- insufficient evidence, along with Doctor Parkhurst, and they will
- deceive the student with the superstition that no gentleman ever
- swears.
- Look at those good millionaires; aren't they gentlemen? Well, they
- swear. Only once in a year, maybe, but there's enough, bulk to it to
- make up for the lost time. And do they lose anything by it? No, they
- don't; they save enough in three minutes to support the family seven
- years. When they swear, do we shudder? No- unless they say "damn!"
- Then we do. It shrivels us all up. Yet we ought not to feel so about
- it, because we all swear- everybody. Including the ladies. Including
- Doctor Parkhurst, that strong and brave and excellent citizen, but
- superficially educated.
- For it is not the word that is the sin, it is the spirit back of the
- word. When an irritated lady says "oh!" the spirit back of it is
- "damn!" and that is the way it is going to be recorded against her. It
- always makes me so sorry when I hear a lady swear like that. But if
- she says "damn," and says it in an amiable, nice way, it isn't going
- to be recorded at all.
- The idea that no gentleman ever swears is all wrong; he can swear
- and still be a gentleman if he does it in a nice and benevolent and
- affectionate way. The historian, John Fiske, whom I knew well and
- loved, was a spotless and most noble and upright Christian
- gentleman, and yet he swore once. Not exactly that, maybe; still,
- he- but I will tell you about it.
- One day, when he was deeply immersed in his work, his wife came
- in, much moved and profoundly distressed, and said: "I am sorry to
- disturb you, John, but I must, for this is a serious matter, and needs
- to be attended to at once."
- Then, lamenting, she brought a grave accusation against their little
- son. She said: "He has been saying his Aunt Mary is a fool and his
- Aunt Martha is a damned fool." Mr. Fiske reflected upon the matter a
- minute, then said: "Oh, well, it's about the distinction I should make
- between them myself."
- Mr. Washington, I beg you to convey these teachings to your great
- and prosperous and most beneficent educational institution, and add
- them to the prodigal mental and moral riches wherewith you equip
- your fortunate proteges for the struggle of life.
- TAMMANY AND CROKER.
-
- Mr. Clemens made his debut as a campaign orator on October 7,
- 1901, advocating the election of Seth Low for Mayor, not as a
- Republican, but as a member of the "Acorns," which he described as a
- "third party having no political affiliation, but was concerned only
- in the selection of the best candidates and the best member."
-
- GREAT BRITAIN had a Tammany and a Croker a good while ago. This
- Tammany was in India, and it began its career with the spread of the
- English dominion after the Battle of Plassey. Its first boss was
- Clive, a sufficiently crooked person sometimes, but straight as a
- yardstick when compared with the corkscrew crookedness of the second
- boss, Warren Hastings.
- That old-time Tammany was the East India Company's government, and
- had its headquarters at Calcutta. Ostensibly it consisted of a Great
- Council of four persons, of whom one was the Governor-General,
- Warren Hastings; really it consisted of one person- Warren Hastings;
- for by usurpation he concentrated all authority in himself and
- governed the country like an autocrat.
- Ostensibly the Court of Directors, sitting in London and
- representing the vast interests of the stockholders, was supreme in
- authority over the Calcutta Great Council, whose membership it
- appointed and removed at pleasure, whose policies it dictated, and
- to whom it conveyed its will in the form of sovereign commands; but
- whenever it suited Hastings, he ignored even that august body's
- authority and conducted the mighty affairs of the British Empire in
- India to suit his own notions.
- At his mercy was the daily bread of every official, every trader,
- every clerk, every civil servant, big and little, in the whole huge
- India Company's machine, and the man who hazarded his bread by any
- failure of subserviency to the boss lost it.
- Now then, let the supreme masters of British India, the giant
- corporation of the India Company of London, stand for the voters of
- the city of New York; let the Great Council of Calcutta stand for
- Tammany; let the corrupt and money-grubbing great hive of serfs
- which served under the Indian Tammany's rod stand for New York
- Tammany's serfs; let Warren Hastings stand for Richard Croker, and
- it seems to me that the parallel is exact and complete. And so let
- us be properly grateful and thank God and our good luck that we didn't
- invent Tammany.
- Edmund Burke, regarded by many as the greatest orator of all
- times, conducted the case against Warren Hastings in that renowned
- trial which lasted years, and which promises to keep its renown for
- centuries to come. I wish to quote some of the things he said. I
- wish to imagine him arrainging Mr. Croker and Tammany before the
- voters of New York City and pleading with them for the overthrow of
- that combined iniquity of the 5th of November, and will substitute for
- "My Lords," read "Fellow-Citizens"; for "Kingdom," read "City"; for
- "Parliamentary Process," read "Political Campaign"; for "Two
- Houses," read "Two Parties," and so it reads:
- "Fellow-citizens, I must look upon it as an auspicious
- circumstance to this cause, in which the honor of the city is
- involved, that from the first commencement of our political campaign
- to this the hour of solemn trial not the smallest difference of
- opinion has arisen between the two parties.
- "You will see, in the progress of this cause, that there is not only
- a long, connected, systematic series of misdemeanors, but an equally
- connected system of maxims and principles invented to justify them.
- Upon both of these you must judge.
- "It is not only the interest of the city of New York, now the most
- considerable part of the city of the Americans, which is concerned,
- but the credit and honor of the nation itself will be decided by
- this decision."
-
- At a later meeting of the Acorn Club, Mr. Clemens said:
-
- Tammany is dead, and there's no use in blackguarding a corpse.
- The election makes me think of a story of a man who was dying. He
- had only two minutes to live, so he sent for a clergyman and asked
- him, "Where is the best place to go to?" He was undecided about it. So
- the minister. told him that each place had its advantages- heaven
- for climate, and hell for society.
- MUNICIPAL CORRUPTION.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE CITY CLUB DINNER, JANUARY 4, 1901.
-
- Bishop Potter told how an alleged representative of Tammany Hall
- asked him in effect if he would cease his warfare upon the Police
- Department if a certain captain and inspector were dismissed. He
- replied that he would never be satisfied until the "man at the top"
- and the "system" which permitted evils in the Police Department were
- crushed.
-
- THE Bishop has just spoken of a condition of things which none of us
- can deny, and which ought not to exist; that is, the lust of gain- a
- lust which does not stop short of the penitentiary or the jail to
- accomplish its ends. But we may be sure of one thing, and that is that
- this sort of thing is not universal. If it were, this country would
- not be. You may put this down as a fact: that out of every fifty
- men, forty-nine are clean. Then why is it, you may ask, that the
- forty-nine don't have things the way they want them? I'll tell you why
- it is. A good deal has been said here to-night about what is to be
- accomplished by organization. That's just the thing. It's because
- the fiftieth fellow and his pals are organized and the other
- forty-nine are not that the dirty one rubs it into the clean fellows
- every time.
- You may say organize, organize, organize; but there may be so much
- organization that it will interfere with the work to be done. The
- Bishop here had an experience of that sort, and told all about it
- down-town the other night. He was painting a barn- it was his own
- barn- and yet he was informed that his work must stop; he was a
- non-union painter, and couldn't continue at that sort of job.
- Now, all these conditions of which you complain should be
- remedied, and I am here to tell you just how to do it. I've been a
- statesman without salary for many years, and I have accomplished great
- and widespread good. I don't know that it has benefited anybody very
- much, even if it was good; but I do know that it hasn't harmed me very
- much, and is hasn't made me any richer.
- We hold the balance of power. Put up your best men for office, and
- we shall support the better one. With the election of the best man for
- Mayor would follow the selection of the best man for Police
- Commissioner and Chief of Police.
- My first lesson in the craft of statesmanship was taken at an
- early age. Fifty-one years ago I was fourteen years old, and we had
- a society in the town I lived in, patterned after the Free-masons,
- or the Ancient Order of United Farmers, or some such thing- just
- what it was patterned after doesn't matter. It had an inside guard and
- an outside guard, and a past-grand warden, and a lot of such things,
- so as to give dignity to the organization and offices to the members.
- Generally speaking it was a pretty good sort of organization, and
- some of the very best boys in the village, including- but I mustn't
- get personal on an occasion like this- and the society would have
- got along pretty well had it not been for the fact that there were a
- certain number of the members who could be bought. They got to be an
- infernal nuisance. Every time we had an election the candidates had to
- go around and see the purchasable members. The price per vote was paid
- in doughnuts, and it depended somewhat on the appetites of the
- individuals as to the price of the votes.
- This thing ran along until some of us, the really very best boys
- in the organization, decided that these corrupt practices must stop,
- and for the purpose of stopping them we organized a third party. We
- had a name, but we were never known by that name. Those who didn't
- like us called us the Anti-Doughnut party, but we didn't mind that.
- We said: "Call us what you please; the name doesn't matter. We are
- organized for a principle." By-and-by the election came around, and we
- made a big mistake. We were triumphantly beaten. That taught us a
- lesson. Then and there we decided never again to nominate anybody
- for anything. We decided simply to force the other two parties in
- the society to nominate their very best men. Although we were
- organized for a principle, we didn't care much about that.
- Principles aren't of much account anyway, except at election-time.
- After that you hang them up to let them season.
- The next time we had an election we told both the other parties that
- we'd beat any candidates put up by any one of them of whom we didn't
- approve. In that election we did business. We got the man we wanted. I
- suppose they called us the Anti-Doughnut party because they couldn't
- buy us with their doughnuts. They didn't have enough of them. Most
- reformers arrive at their price sooner or later, and I suppose we
- would have had our price; but our opponents weren't offering
- anything but doughnuts, and those we spurned.
- Now it seems to me that an Anti-Doughnut party is just what is
- wanted in the present emergency. I would have the Anti-Doughnuts
- felt in every city and hamlet and school district in this State and in
- the United States. I was an Anti-Doughnut in my boyhood, and I'm an
- Anti-Doughnut still. The modern designation is Mugwump. There used
- to be quite a number of us Mugwumps, but I think I'm the only one
- left. I had a vote this fall, and I began to make some inquiries as to
- what I had better do with it.
- I don't know anything about finance, and I never did, but I know
- some pretty shrewd financiers, and they told me that Mr. Bryan
- wasn't safe on any financial question. I said to myself, then, that it
- wouldn't do for me to vote for Bryan, and I rather thought- I know
- now- that McKinley wasn't just right on this Philippine question,
- and so I just didn't vote for anybody. I've got that vote yet, and
- I've kept it clean, ready to deposit at some other election. It wasn't
- cast for any wildcat financial theories, and it wasn't cast to support
- the man who sends our boys as volunteers out into the Philippines to
- get shot down under a polluted flag.
- MUNICIPAL GOVERNMENT.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE ANNUAL DINNER OF THE ST. NICHOLAS
- SOCIETY, NEW YORK, DECEMBER 6, 1900.
-
- Doctor Mackay, in his response to the toast "St. Nicholas," referred
- to Mr. Clemens, saying: "Mark Twain is as true a preacher of true
- righteousness as any bishop, priest, or minister of any church to-day,
- because he moves men to forget their faults by cheerful well-doing
- instead of making them sour and morbid by everlastingly bending
- their attention to the seamy and sober side of life."
-
- MR. CHAIRMAN AND GENTLEMEN OF THE ST. NICHOLAS SOCIETY,- These
- are, indeed, prosperous days for me. Night before last, in a speech,
- the Bishop of the Diocese of New York complimented me for my
- contribution to theology, and to-night the Reverend Doctor Mackay
- has elected me to the ministry. I thanked Bishop Potter then for his
- compliment, and I thank Doctor Mackay now for that promotion. I
- think that both have discerned in me what I long ago discerned, but
- what I was afraid the world would never learn to recognize.
- In this absence of nine years I find a great improvement in the city
- of New York. I am glad to speak on that as a toast- "The City of New
- York." Some say it has improved because I have been away. Others,
- and I agree with them, say it has improved because I have come back.
- We must judge of a city, as of a man, by its external appearances
- and by its inward character. In externals the foreigner coming to
- these shores is more impressed at first by our sky-scrapers. They
- are new to him. He has not done anything of the sort since he built
- the tower of Babel. The foreigner is shocked by them.
- In the daylight they are ugly. They are- well, too chimneyfied and
- too snaggy- like a mouth that needs attention from a dentist; like a
- cemetery that is all monuments and no gravestones. But at night,
- seen from the river where they are columns towering against the sky,
- all sparkling with light, they are fairylike; they are beauty more
- satisfactory to the soul and more enchanting than anything that man
- has dreamed of since the Arabian nights. We can't always have the
- beautiful aspect of things. Let us make the most of our sights that
- are beautiful and let the others go. When your foreigner makes
- disagreeable comments on New York by daylight, float him down the
- river at night.
- What has made these sky-scrapers possible is the elevator. The
- cigar-box which the European calls a "lift" needs but to be compared
- with our elevators to be appreciated. The lift stops to reflect
- between floors. That is all right in a hearse, but not in elevators.
- The American elevator acts like the man's patent purge- it worked.
- As the inventor said, "This purge doesn't waste any time fooling
- around; it attends strictly to business."
- That New-Yorkers have the cleanest, quickest, and most admirable
- system of street railways in the world has been forced upon you by the
- abnormal appreciation you have of your hackman. We ought always to
- be grateful to him for that service. Nobody else would have brought
- such a system into existence for us. We ought to build him a monument.
- We owe him one as much as we owe one to anybody. Let it be a tall one.
- Nothing permanent, of course; build it of plaster, say. Then gaze at
- it and realize how grateful we are- for the time being- and then
- pull it down and throw it on the ash-heap. That's the way to honor
- your public heroes.
- As to our streets, I find them cleaner than they used to be. I
- miss those dear old landmarks, the symmetrical mountain ranges of dust
- and dirt that used to be piled up along the streets for the wind and
- rain to tear down at their pleasure. Yes, New York is cleaner than
- Bombay. I realize that I have been in Bombay, that I now am in New
- York; that it is not my duty to flatter Bombay, but rather to
- flatter New York.
- Compared with the wretched attempts of London to light that city,
- New York may fairly be said to be a well-lighted city. Why, London's
- attempt at good lighting is almost as bad as London's attempt at rapid
- transit. There is just one good system of rapid transit in London- the
- "Tube," and that, of course, had been put in by Americans. Perhaps,
- after a while, those Americans will come back and give New York also a
- good underground system. Perhaps they have already begun. I have
- been so busy since I came back that I haven't had time as yet to go
- down cellar.
- But it is by the laws of the city, it is by the manners of the city,
- it is by the ideals of the city, it is by the customs of the city
- and by the municipal government which all these elements correct,
- support, and foster, by which the foreigner judges the city. It is
- by these that he realizes that New York may, indeed, hold her head
- high among the cities of the world. It is by these standards that he
- knows whether to class the city higher or lower than the other
- municipalities of the world.
- Gentlemen, you have the best municipal government in the world-
- the purest and the most fragrant. The very angels envy you, and wish
- they could establish a government like it in heaven. You got it by a
- noble fidelity to civic duty. You got it by stern and ever-watchful
- exertion of the great powers with which you are charged by the
- rights which were handed down to you by your forefathers, by your
- manly refusal to let base men invade the high places of your
- government, and by instant retaliation when any public officer has
- insulted you in the city's name by swerving in the slightest from
- the upright and full performance of his duty. It is you who have
- made this city the envy of the cities of the world. God will bless you
- for it- God will bless you for it. Why, when you approach the final
- resting-place the angels of heaven will gather at the gates and cry
- out:
- "Here they come! Show them to the archangel's box, and turn the
- lime-light on them!"
- CHINA AND THE PHILIPPINES.
-
- AT A DINNER GIVEN IN THE WALDORF-ASTORIA HOTEL,
- DECEMBER, 1900.
-
- Winston Spencer Churchill was introduced by Mr. Clemens
-
- FOR years I've been a self-appointed missionary to bring about the
- union of America and the motherland. They ought to be united. Behold
- America, the refuge of the oppressed from everywhere (who can pay
- fifty dollars' admission)- any one except a Chinaman- standing up
- for human rights everywhere, even helping China let people in free
- when she wants to collect fifty dollars upon them. And how unselfishly
- England has wrought for the open door for all! And how piously America
- has wrought for that open door in all cases where it was not her own!
- Yes, as a missionary I've sung my songs of praise. And yet I think
- that England sinned when she got herself into a war in South Africa
- which she could have avoided, just as we sinned in getting into a
- similar war in the Philippines. Mr. Churchill, by his father, is an
- Englishman; by his mother he is an American- no doubt a blend that
- makes the perfect man. England and America; yes, we are kin. And now
- that we are also kin in sin, there is nothing more to be desired.
- The harmony is complete, the blend is perfect.
- THEORETICAL AND PRACTICAL MORALS.
-
- The New Vagabonds Club of London, made up of the leading younger
- literary men of the day, gave a dinner in honor of Mr. and Mrs.
- Clemens, July 8, 1899.
-
- IT has always been difficult- leave that word difficult- not
- exceedingly difficult, but just difficult, nothing more than that, not
- the slightest shade to add to that- just difficult- to respond
- properly, in the right phraseology, when compliments are paid to me;
- but it is more than difficult when the compliments are paid to a
- better than I- my wife.
- And while I am not here to testify against myself- I can't be
- expected to do so, a prisoner in your own country is not admitted to
- do so- as to which member of the family wrote my books, I could say in
- general that really I wrote the books myself. My wife puts the facts
- in, and they make it respectable. My modesty won't suffer while
- compliments are being paid to literature, and through literature to my
- family. I can't get enough of them.
- I am curiously situated to-night. It so rarely happens that I am
- introduced by a humorist; I am generally introduced by a person of
- grave walk and carriage. That makes the proper background of gravity
- for brightness. I am going to alter to suit, and haply I may say
- some humorous things.
- When you start with a blaze of sunshine and upburst of humor, when
- you begin with that, the proper office of humor is to reflect, to
- put you into that pensive mood of deep thought, to make you think of
- your sins, if you wish half an hour to fly. Humor makes me reflect now
- to-night, it sets the thinking machinery in motion. Always, when I
- am thinking, there come suggestions of what I am, and what we all are,
- and what we are coming to. A sermon comes from my lips always when I
- listen to a humorous speech.
- I seize the opportunity to throw away frivolities, to say
- something to plant the seed, and make all better than when I came.
- In Mr. Grossmith's remarks there was a subtle something suggesting
- my favorite theory of the difference between theoretical morals and
- practical morals. I try to instil practical morals in the place of
- theatrical- I mean theoretical; but as an addendum- an annex-
- something added to theoretical morals.
- When your chairman said it was the first time he had ever taken
- the chair, he did not mean that he had not taken lots of other things;
- he attended my first lecture and took notes. This indicated the
- man's disposition. There was nothing else flying round, so he took
- notes; he would have taken anything he could get.
- I can bring a moral to bear here which shows the difference
- between theoretical morals and practical morals. Theoretical morals
- are the sort you get on your mother's knee, in good books, and from
- the pulpit. You gather them in your head, and not in your heart;
- they are theory without practice. Without the assistance of practice
- to perfect them, it is difficult to teach a child to "be honest, don't
- steal."
- I will teach you how it should be done, lead you into temptation,
- teach you how to steal, so that you may recognize when you have stolen
- and feel the proper pangs. It is no good going round and bragging
- you have never taken the chair.
- As by the fires of experience, so by commission of crime, you
- learn real morals. Commit all the crimes, familiarize yourself with
- all sins, take them in rotation (there are only two or three
- thousand of them), stick to it, commit two or three every day, and
- by-and-by you will be proof against them. When you are through you
- will be proof against all sins and morally perfect. You will be
- vaccinated against every possible commission of them. This is the only
- way.
- I will read you a written statement upon the subject that I wrote
- three years ago to read to the Sabbath-schools. [Here the lecturer
- turned his pockets out, but without success.] No! I have left it at
- home. Still, it was a mere statement of fact, illustrating the value
- of practical morals produced by the commission of crime.
- It was in my boyhood- just a statement of fact, reading is only more
- formal, merely facts, merely pathetic facts, which I can state so as
- to be understood. It relates to the first time I ever stole a
- watermelon; that is, I think it was the first time; anyway, it was
- right along there somewhere.
- I stole it out of a farmer's wagon while he was waiting on another
- customer. "Stole" is a harsh term. I withdrew- I retired that
- watermelon. I carried it to a secluded corner of a lumber-yard. I
- broke it open. It was green- the greenest watermelon raised in the
- valley that year.
- The minute I saw it was green I was sorry, and began to reflect-
- reflection is the beginning of reform. If you don't reflect when you
- commit a crime then that crime is of no use; it might just as well
- have been committed by some one else. You must reflect or the value is
- lost; you are not vaccinated against committing it again.
- I began to reflect. I said to myself: "What ought a boy to do who
- has stolen a green watermelon? What would George Washington do, the
- father of his country, the only American who could not tell a lie?
- What would he do? There is only one right, high, noble thing for any
- boy to do who has stolen a watermelon of that class: he must make
- restitution; he must restore that stolen property to its rightful
- owner." I said I would do it when I made that good resolution. I
- felt it to be a noble, uplifting obligation. I rose up spiritually
- stronger and refreshed. I carried that watermelon back- what was
- left of it- and restored it to the farmer, and made him give me a ripe
- one in its place.
- Now you see that this constant impact of crime upon crime protects
- you against further commission of crime. It builds you up. A man can't
- become morally perfect by stealing one or a thousand green
- watermelons, but every little helps.
- I was at a great school yesterday (St. Paul's), where for four
- hundred years they have been busy with brains, and building up England
- by producing Pepys, Miltons, and Marlboroughs. Six hundred boys left
- to nothing in the world but theoretical morality. I wanted to become
- the professor of practical morality, but the high master was away,
- so I suppose I shall have to go on making my living- the same old way-
- by adding practical to theoretical morality.
- What are the glory that was Greece, the grandeur that was Rome,
- compared to the glory and grandeur and majesty of a perfected morality
- such as you see before you?
- The New Vagabonds are old vagabonds (undergoing the old sort of
- reform). You drank my health; I hope I have not been unuseful. Take
- this system of morality to your hearts. Take it home to your neighbors
- and your graves, and I hope that it will be a long time before you
- arrive there.
- LAYMAN'S SERMON.
-
- The Young Men's Christian Association asked Mr. Clemens to deliver a
- lay sermon at the Majestic Theatre, New York, March 4, 1906. More than
- five thousand young men tried to get into the theatre, and in a
- short time traffic was practically stopped in the adjacent streets.
- The police reserves had to be called out to thin the crowd. Doctor
- Fagnani had said something before about the police episode, and Mr.
- Clemens took it up.
-
- I HAVE been listening to what was said here, and there is in it a
- lesson of citizenship. You created the police, and you are responsible
- for them. One must pause, therefore, before criticising them too
- harshly. They are citizens, just as we are. A little of citizenship
- ought to be taught at the mother's knee and in the nursery.
- Citizenship is what makes a republic; monarchies can get along without
- it. What keeps a republic on its legs is good citizenship.
- Organization is necessary in all things. It is even necessary in
- reform. I was an organization myself once- for twelve hours. I was
- in Chicago a few years ago about to depart for New York. There were
- with me Mr. Osgood, a publisher, and a stenographer. I picked out a
- state-room on a train, the principal feature of which was that it
- contained the privilege of smoking. The train had started but a
- short time when the conductor came in and said that there had been a
- mistake made, and asked that we vacate the apartment. I refused, but
- when I went out on the platform Osgood and the stenographer agreed
- to accept a section. They were too modest.
- Now, I am not modest. I was born modest, but it didn't last. I
- asserted myself, insisted upon my rights, and finally the Pullman
- conductor and the train conductor capitulated, and I was left in
- possession.
- I went into the dining-car the next morning for breakfast.
- Ordinarily I only care for coffee and rolls, but this particular
- morning I espied an important-looking man on the other side of the car
- eating broiled chicken. I asked for broiled chicken, and I was told by
- the waiter and later by the dining-car conductor that there was no
- broiled chicken. There must have been an argument, for the Pullman
- conductor came in and remarked: "If he wants broiled chicken, give
- it to him. If you haven't got it on the train, stop somewhere. It will
- be better for all concerned!" I got the chicken.
- It is from experiences such as these that you get your education
- of life, and you string them into jewels or into tinware, as you may
- choose. I have received recently several letters asking my counsel
- or advice. The principal request is for some incident that may prove
- helpful to the young. There were a lot of incidents in my career to
- help me along- sometimes they helped me along faster than I wanted
- to go.
- Here is such a request. It is a telegram from Joplin, Missouri,
- and it reads: "In what one of your works can we find the definition of
- a gentleman?"
- I have not answered that telegram, either; I couldn't. It seems to
- me that if any man has just merciful and kindly instincts he would
- be a gentleman, for he would need nothing else in the world.
- I received the other day a letter from my old friend, William Dean
- Howells- Howells, the head of American literature. No one is able to
- stand with him. He is an old, old friend of mine, and he writes me,
- "To-morrow I shall be sixty-nine years old." Why, I am surprised at
- Howells writing that! I have known him longer than that. I'm sorry
- to see a man trying to appear so young. Let's see. Howells says now,
- "I see you have been burying Patrick. I suppose he was old, too."
- No, he was never old- Patrick. He came to us thirty-six years ago.
- He was my coachman on the morning that I drove my young bride to our
- new home. He was a young Irishman, slender, tall, lithe, honest,
- truthful, and he never changed in all his life. He really was with
- us but twenty-five years, for he did not go with us to Europe, but
- he never regarded that as separation. As the children grew up he was
- their guide. He was all honor, honesty, and affection. He was with
- us in New Hampshire, with us last summer, and his hair was just as
- black, his eyes were just as blue, his form just as straight, and
- his heart just as good as on the day we first met. In all the long
- years Patrick never made a mistake. He never needed an order, he never
- received a command. He knew. I have been asked for my idea of an ideal
- gentleman, and I give it to you- Patrick McAleer.
- UNIVERSITY SETTLEMENT SOCIETY.
-
- After the serious addresses were made, Seth Low introduced Mr.
- Clemens at the Settlement House, February 2, 1901.
-
- THE older we grow the greater becomes our wonder at how much
- ignorance one can contain without bursting one's clothes. Ten days ago
- I did not know anything about the University Settlement except what
- I'd read in the pamphlets sent me. Now, after being here and hearing
- Mrs. Hewitt and Mrs. Thomas, it seems to me I know of nothing like
- it at all. It's a charity that carries no humiliation with it.
- Marvellous it is, to think of schools where you don't have to drive
- the children in but drive them out. It was not so in my day.
- Down-stairs just now I saw a dancing lesson going on. You must pay a
- cent for a lesson. You can't get it for nothing. That's the reason I
- never learned to dance.
- But it was the pawnbroker's shop you have here that interested me
- mightily. I've known something about pawnbrokers' shops in my time,
- but here you have a wonderful plan. The ordinary pawnbroker charges,
- thirty-six per cent; a year for a loan, and I've paid more myself, but
- here a man or woman in distress can obtain a loan. for one per cent. a
- month! It's wonderful!
- I've been interested in all I've heard to-day, especially in the
- romances recounted by Mrs. Thomas, which reminds me that I have a
- romance of my own in my autobiography, which I am building for the
- instruction of the world.
- In San Francisco, many years ago, when I was a newspaper reporter
- (perhaps I should say I had been and was willing to be), a
- pawnbroker was taking care of what property I had. There was a
- friend of mine, a poet, out of a job, and he was having a hard time of
- it, too. There was passage in it, but I guess I've got to keep that
- for the autobiography.
- Well, my friend the poet thought his life was a failure, and I
- told him I thought it was, and then he said he thought he ought to
- commit suicide, and I said "all right," which was disinterested advice
- to a friend in trouble; but, like all such advice, there was just a
- little bit of self-interest back of it, for if I could get a "scoop"
- on the other newspapers I could get a job.
- The poet could be spared, and so, largely for his own good and
- partly for mine, I kept the thing in his mind, which was necessary, as
- would-be suicides are very changeable and hard to hold to their
- purpose. He had a preference for a pistol, which was an
- extravagance, for we hadn't enough between us to hire a pistol. A fork
- would have been easier.
- And so he concluded to drown himself, and I said it was an excellent
- idea- the only trouble being that he was so good a swimmer. So we went
- down to the beach. I went along to see that the thing was done
- right. Then something most romantic happened. There came in on the sea
- something that had been on its way for three years. It rolled in
- across the broad Pacific with a message that was full of meaning to
- that poor poet and cast itself at his feet. It was a life-preserver!
- This was a complication. And then I had an idea- he never had any,
- especially when he was going to write poetry; I suggested that we pawn
- the life-preserver and get a revolver.
- The pawnbroker gave us an old derringer with a bullet as big as a
- hickory nut. When he heard that it was only a poet that was going to
- kill himself he did not quibble. Well, we succeeded in sending a
- bullet right through his head. It was a terrible moment when he placed
- that pistol against his forehead and stood for an instant. I said,
- "Oh, pull the trigger!" and he did, and cleaned out all the gray
- matter in his brains. It carried the poetic faculty away, and now he's
- a useful member of society.
- Now, therefore, I realize that there's no more beneficent
- institution than this penny fund of yours, and I want all the poets to
- know this. I did think about writing you a check, but now I think I'll
- send you a few copies of what one of your little members called
- Strawberry Finn.
- PUBLIC EDUCATION ASSOCIATION.
-
- ADDRESS AT A MEETING OF THE BERKELEY LYCEUM,
- NEW YORK, NOVEMBER 23, 1900.
-
- I DON'T suppose that I am called here as an expert on education, for
- that would show a lack of foresight on your part and a deliberate
- intention to remind me of my shortcomings.
- As I sat here looking around for an idea it struck me that I was
- called for two reasons. One was to do good to me, a poor unfortunate
- traveller on the world's wide ocean, by giving me a knowledge of the
- nature and scope of your society and letting me know that others
- beside myself have been of some use in the world. The other reason
- that I can see is that you have called me to show by way of contrast
- what education can accomplish if administered in the right sort of
- doses.
- Your worthy president said that the school pictures, which have
- received the admiration of the world at the Paris Exposition, have
- been sent to Russia, and this was a compliment from that Government-
- which is very surprising to me. Why, it is only an hour since I read a
- cablegram in the newspapers beginning "Russia Proposes to Retrench." I
- was not expecting such a thunderbolt, and I thought what a happy thing
- it will be for Russians when the retrenchment will bring home the
- thirty thousand Russian troops now in Manchuria, to live in peaceful
- pursuits. I thought this was what Germany should do also without
- delay, and that France and all the other nations in China should
- follow suit.
- Why should not China be free from the foreigners, who are only
- making trouble on her soil? If they would only all go home, what a
- pleasant place China would be for the Chinese! We do not allow
- Chinamen to come here, and I say in all seriousness that it would be a
- graceful thing to let China decide who shall go there.
- China never wanted foreigners any more than foreigners wanted
- Chinamen, and on this question I am with the Boxers every time. The
- Boxer is a patriot. He loved his country better than he does the
- countries of other people. I wish him success. The Boxer believes in
- driving us out of his country. I am a Boxer too, for I believe in
- driving him out of our country.
- When I read the Russian despatch further my dream of world peace
- vanished. It said that the vast expense of maintaining the army had
- made it necessary to retrench, and so the Government had decided
- that to support the army it would be necessary to withdraw the
- appropriation from the public schools. This is a monstrous idea to us.
- We believe that out of the public school grows the greatness of a
- nation.
- It is curious to reflect how history repeats itself the world
- over. Why, I remember the same thing was done when I was a boy on
- the Mississippi River. There was a proposition in a township there
- to discontinue public schools because they were too expensive. An
- old farmer spoke up and said if they stopped the schools they would
- not save anything, because every time a school was closed a jail had
- to be built.
- It's like feeding a dog on his own tail. He'll never get fat. I
- believe it is better to support schools than jails.
- The work of your association is better and shows more wisdom than
- the Czar of Russia and all his people. This is not much of a
- compliment, but it's the best I've got in stock.
- EDUCATION AND CITIZENSHIP.
-
- On the evening of May 14, 1908, the alumni of the College of the
- City of New York celebrated the opening of the new college buildings
- at a banquet in the Waldorf-Astoria. Mr. Clemens followed Mayor
- McClellan.
-
- I AGREED when the Mayor said that there was not a man within hearing
- who did not agree that citizenship should be placed above everything
- else, even learning.
- Have you ever thought about this? Is there a college in the whole
- country where there is a chair of good citizenship? There is a kind of
- bad citizenship which is taught in the schools, but no real good
- citizenship taught. There are some which teach insane citizenship,
- bastard citizenship, but that is all. Patriotism! Yes; but
- patriotism is usually the refuge of the scoundrel. He is the man who
- talks the loudest.
- You can begin that chair of citizenship in the College of the City
- of New York. You can place it above mathematics and literature, and
- that is where it belongs.
- We used to trust in God. I think it was in 1863 that some genius
- suggested that it be put upon the gold and silver coins which
- circulated among the rich. They didn't put it on the nickels and
- coppers because they didn't think the poor folks had any trust in God.
- Good citizenship would teach accuracy of thinking and accuracy of
- statement. Now, that motto on the coin is an overstatement. Those
- Congressmen had no right to commit this whole country to a theological
- doctrine. But since they did, Congress ought to state what our creed
- should be.
- There was never a nation in the world that put its whole trust in
- God. It is a statement made on insufficient evidence. Leaving out
- the gamblers, the burglars, and the plumbers, perhaps we do put our
- trust in God after a fashion. But, after all, it is an overstatement.
- If the cholera or black plague should come to these shores,
- perhaps the bulk of the nation would pray to be delivered from it, but
- the rest would put their trust in the Health Board of the City of
- New York.
- I read in the papers within the last day or two of a poor young girl
- who they said was a leper. Did the people in that populous section
- of the country where she was- did they put their trust in God? The
- girl was afflicted with the leprosy, a disease which cannot be
- communicated from one person to another.
- Yet, instead of putting their trust in God, they harried that poor
- creature, shelterless and friendless, from place to place, exactly
- as they did in the Middle Ages, when they made lepers wear bells, so
- that people could be warned of their approach and avoid them.
- Perhaps those people in the Middle Ages thought they were putting
- their trust in God.
- The President ordered the removal of that motto from the coin, and I
- thought that it was well. I thought that overstatement should not stay
- there. But I think it would better read, "Within certain judicious
- limitations we trust in God," and if there isn't enough room on the
- coin for this, why, enlarge the coin.
- Now I want to tell a story about jumping at conclusions. It was told
- to me by Bram Stoker, and it concerns a christening. There was a
- little clergyman who was prone to jump at conclusions sometimes. One
- day he was invited to officiate at a christening. He went. There sat
- the relatives- intelligent-looking relatives they were. The little
- clergyman's instinct came to him to make a great speech. He was
- given to flights of oratory that way- a very dangerous thing, for
- often the wings which take one into clouds of oratorical enthusiasm
- are wax and melt up there, and down you come.
- But the little clergyman couldn't resist. He took the child in his
- arms, and, holding it, looked at it a moment. It wasn't much of a
- child. It was little, like a sweet-potato. Then the little clergyman
- waited impressively, and then: "I see in your countenances," he
- said, "disappointment of him. I see you are disappointed with this
- baby. Why? Because he is so little. My friends, if you had but the
- power of looking into the future you might see that great things may
- come of little things. There is the great ocean, holding the navies of
- the world, which comes from little drops of water no larger than a
- woman's tears. There are the great constellations in the sky, made
- up of little bits of stars. Oh, if you could consider his future you
- might see that he might become the greatest poet of the universe,
- the greatest warrior the world has ever known, greater than Caesar,
- than Hannibal, than- er- er" (turning to the father)- "what's his
- name?"
- The father hesitated, then whispered back: "His name? Well, his name
- is Mary Ann."
- COURAGE
- COURAGE.
-
- At a beefsteak dinner, given by artists, caricaturists, and
- humorists of New York City, April 18, 1908, Mr. Clemens, Mr. H. H.
- Rogers, and Mr. Patrick McCarren were the guests of honor. Each wore a
- white apron, and each made a short speech.
-
- IN the matter of courage we all have our limits. There never was a
- hero who did not have his bounds. I suppose it may be said of Nelson
- and all the others whose courage has been advertised that there came
- times in their lives when their bravery knew it had come to its limit.
- I have found mine a good many times. Sometimes this was expected-
- often it was unexpected. I know a man who is not afraid to sleep
- with a rattlesnake, but you could not get him to sleep with a
- safety-razor.
- I never had the courage to talk across a long, narrow room I
- should be at the end of the room facing all the audience. If I attempt
- to talk across a room I find myself turning this way and that, and
- thus at alternate periods I have part of the audience behind me. You
- ought never to have any part of the audience behind you; you never can
- tell what they are going to do.
- I'll sit down.
- THE DINNER TO MR. CHOATE.
-
- AT A DINNER GIVEN IN HONOR OF AMBASSADOR
- JOSEPH H. CHOATE AT THE LOTOS CLUB,
- NOVEMBER 24, 1901.
-
- The speakers, among others, were: Senator Depew, William Henry White,
- Speaker Thomas Reed, and Mr. Choate. Mr. Clemens spoke, in part, as
- follows:
-
- THE greatness of this country rests on two anecdotes. The first
- one is that of Washington and his hatchet, representing the foundation
- of true speaking, which is the characteristic of our people. The
- second one is an old one, and I've been waiting to hear it to-night,
- but as nobody has told it yet, I will tell it.
- You've heard it before, and you'll hear it many, many times more. It
- is an anecdote of our guest, of the time when he was engaged as a
- young man with a gentle Hebrew, in the process of skinning the client.
- The main part in that business is the collection of the bill for
- services in skinning the man. "Services" is the term used in that
- craft for the operation of that kind- diplomatic in its nature.
- Choate's- co-respondent- made out a bill for $500 for his
- services, so called. But Choate told him he had better leave the
- matter to him, and the next day he collected the bill for the services
- and handed the Hebrew $5000, saying, "That's your half of the loot,"
- and inducing that memorable response: "Almost thou persuadest me to be
- a Christian.'
- The deep-thinkers didn't merely laugh when that happened. They
- stopped to think, and said: "There's a rising man. He must be
- rescued from the law and consecrated to diplomacy. The commercial
- advantages of a great nation lie there in that man's keeping. We no
- longer require a man to take care of our moral character before the
- world. Washington and his anecdote have done that. We require a man to
- take care of our commercial prosperity."
- Mr. Choate has carried that trait with him, and, as Mr. Carnegie has
- said, he has worked like a mole underground.
- We see the result when American railroad iron is sold so cheap in
- England that the poorest family can have it. He has so beguiled that
- Cabinet of England.
- He has been spreading the commerce of this nation, and has depressed
- English commerce in the same ratio. This was the principle
- underlying that anecdote, and the wise men saw it; the principle of
- give and take- give one and take ten- the principle of diplomacy.
- ON STANLEY AND LIVINGSTONE.
-
- Mr. Clemens was entertained at dinner by the White-friars' Club,
- London, at the Mitre Tavern, on the evening of August 6, 1872. In
- reply to the toast in his honor he said:
-
- GENTLEMEN,- I thank you very heartily indeed for this expression
- of kindness toward me. What I have done for England and civilization
- in the arduous affairs which I have engaged in (that is good: that
- is so smooth that I will say it again and again)- what I have done for
- England and civilization in the arduous part I have performed I have
- done with a single-hearted devotion and with no hope of reward. I am
- proud, I am very proud, that it was reserved for me to find Doctor
- Livingstone and for Mr. Stanley to get all the credit. I hunted for
- that man in Africa all over seventy-five or one hundred parishes,
- thousands and thousands of miles in the wilds and deserts all over the
- place, sometimes riding negroes and sometimes travelling by rail. I
- didn't mind the rail or anything else, so that I didn't come in for
- the tar and feathers. I found that man at Ujiji- a place you may
- remember if you have ever been there- and it was a very great
- satisfaction that I found him just in the nick of time. I found that
- poor old man deserted by his niggers and by his geographers,
- deserted by all of his kind except the gorillas- dejected,
- miserable, famishing, absolutely famishing- but he was eloquent.
- Just as I found him he had eaten his last elephant, and he said to me:
- "God knows where I shall get another." He had nothing to wear except
- his venerable and honorable naval suit, and nothing to eat but his
- diary.
- But I said to him: "It is all right; I have discovered you, and
- Stanley will be here by the four-o'clock train and will discover you
- officially, and then we will turn to and have a reg'lar good time."
- I said: "Cheer up, for Stanley has got corn, ammunition, glass
- beads, hymn-books, whiskey, and everything which the human heart can
- desire; he has got all kinds of valuables, including telegraph-poles
- and a few cart-loads of money. By this time communication has been
- made with the land of Bibles and civilization, and property will
- advance." And then we surveyed all that country, from Ujiji, through
- Unanogo and other places, to Unyanyembe. I mention these names
- simply for your edification, nothing more- do not expect it-
- particularly as intelligence to the Royal Geographical Society. And
- then, having filled up the old man, we were all too full for utterance
- and departed. We have since then feasted on honors.
- Stanley has received a snuff-box and I have received considerable
- snuff; he has got to write a book and gather in the rest of the
- credit, and I am going to levy on the copyright and to collect the
- money. Nothing comes amiss to me- cash or credit; but, seriously, I do
- feel that Stanley is the chief man and an illustrious one, and I do
- applaud him with all my heart. Whether he is an American or a Welshman
- by birth, or one, or both, matter's not to me. So far as I am
- personally concerned, I am simply here to stay a few months, and to
- see English people and to learn English manners and customs, and to
- enjoy myself; so the simplest thing I can do is to thank you for the
- toast you have honored me with and for the remarks you have made,
- and to wish health and prosperity to the White-friar's' Club, and to
- sink down to my accustomed level.
- HENRY M. STANLEY.
-
- ADDRESS DELIVERED IN BOSTON, NOVEMBER, 1886.
-
- Mr. Clemens introduced Mr. Stanley.
-
- LADIES AND GENTLEMEN, if any should ask, Why is it that you are here
- as introducer of the lecturer? I should answer that I happened to be
- around and was asked to perform this function. I was quite willing
- to do so, and, as there was no sort of need of an introduction,
- anyway, it could be necessary only that some person come forward for a
- moment and do an unnecessary thing, and this is quite in my line. Now,
- to introduce so illustrious a name as Henry M. Stanley by any detail
- of what the man has done is clear aside from my purpose; that would be
- stretching the unnecessary to an unconscionable degree. When I
- contrast what I have achieved in my measurably brief life with what he
- has achieved in his possibly briefer one, the effect is to sweep
- utterly away the ten-story edifice of my own self-appreciation and
- leave nothing behind but the cellar. When you compare these
- achievements of his with the achievements of really great men who
- exist in history, the comparison, I believe, is in his favor. I am not
- here to disparage Columbus.
- No, I won't do that; but when you come to regard the achievements of
- these two men, Columbus and Stanley, from the standpoint of the
- difficulties their encountered, the advantage is with Stanley and
- against Columbus. Now, Columbus started out to discover America. Well,
- he didn't need to do anything at all but sit in the cabin of his
- ship and hold his grip and sail straight on, and America would
- discover itself. Here it was, barring his passage the whole length and
- breadth of the South American continent, and he couldn't get by it.
- He'd got to discover it. But Stanley started out to find Doctor
- Livingstone, who was scattered abroad, as you may say, over the length
- and breadth of a vast slab of Africa as big as the United States.
- It was a blind kind of search. He was the worst scattered of men.
- But I will throw the weight of this introduction upon one very
- peculiar feature of Mr. Stanley's character, and that is his
- indestructible Americanism- an Americanism which he is proud of. And
- in this day and time, when it is the custom to ape and imitate English
- methods and fashion, it is like a breath of fresh air to stand in
- the presence of this untainted American citizen who has been
- caressed and complimented by half of the crowned heads of Europe,
- who could clothe his body from his head to his heels with the orders
- and decorations lavished upon him. And yet, when the untitled
- myriads of his own country put out their hands in welcome to him and
- greet him, "Well done," through the Congress of the United States,
- that is the crown that is worth all the rest to him. He is a product
- of institutions which exist in no other country on earth- institutions
- that bring out all that is best and most heroic in a man. I
- introduce Henry M. Stanley.
- DINNER TO MR. JEROME.
-
- A dinner to express their confidence in the integrity and good
- judgment of District-Attorney Jerome was given as Delmonico's by
- over three hundred of his admirers on the evening of May 7, 1909.
-
- INDEED, that is very sudden. I was not informed that the verdict was
- going to depend upon my judgment, but that makes not the least
- difference in the world when you already know all about it. It is
- not any matter when you are called upon to express it; you can get
- up and do it, and my verdict has already been recorded in my heart and
- in my head as regards Mr. Jerome and his administration of the
- criminal affairs of this county.
- I agree with everything Mr. Choate has said in his letter
- regarding Mr. Jerome; I agree with everything Mr. Shepard has said;
- and I agree with everything Mr. Jerome has said in his own
- commendation. And I thought Mr. Jerome was modest in that. If he had
- been talking about another officer of this county, he could have
- painted the joys and sorrows of office and his victories in even
- stronger language than he did.
- I voted for Mr. Jerome in those old days, and I should like to
- vote for him again if he runs for any office. I moved out of New York,
- and that is the reason, I suppose, I cannot vote for him again.
- There may be some way, but I have not found it out. But now I am a
- farmer- a farmer up in Connecticut, and winning laurels. Those
- people already speak with such high favor, admiration, of my
- farming, and they say that I am the only man that has ever come to
- that region who could make two blades of grass grow where only three
- grew before.
- Well, I cannot vote for him. You see that. As it stands now, I
- cannot. I am crippled in that way and to that extent, for I would ever
- so much like to do it. I am not a Congress, and I cannot distribute
- pensions, and I don't know any other legitimate way to buy a vote. But
- if I should think of any legitimate way, I shall make use of it, and
- then I shall vote for Mr. Jerome.
- HENRY IRVING.
-
- The Dramatic and Literary Society of London gave a welcome-home
- dinner to Sir Henry Irving at the Savoy Hotel, London, June 9, 1900.
- In proposing the toast of "The Drama" Mr. Clemens said:
-
- I FIND my task a very easy one. I have been a dramatist for thirty
- years. I have had an ambition in all that time to overdo the work of
- the Spaniard who said he left behind him four hundred dramas when he
- died. I leave behind me four hundred and fifteen, and am not yet dead.
- The greatest of all the arts is to write a drama. It is a most
- difficult thing. It requires the highest talent possible and the
- rarest gifts. No, there is another talent that ranks with it- for
- anybody can write a drama- I had four hundred of them- but to get
- one accepted requires real ability. And I have never had that felicity
- yet.
- But human nature is so constructed, we are so persistent, that
- when we know that we are born to a thing we do not care what the world
- thinks about it. We go on exploiting that talent year after year, as I
- have done. I shall go on writing dramas, and some day the impossible
- may happen, but I am not looking for it.
- In writing plays the chief thing is novelty. The world grows tired
- of solid forms in all the arts. I struck a new idea myself years
- ago. I was not surprised at it. I was always expecting it would
- happen. A person who has suffered disappointment for many years
- loses confidence, and I thought I had better make inquiries before I
- exploited my new idea of doing a drama in the form of a dream, so I
- wrote to a great authority on knowledge of all kinds, and asked him
- whether it was new.
- I could depend upon him. He lived in my dear home in America- that
- dear home, dearer to me through taxes. He sent me a list of plays in
- which that old device had been used, and he said that there was also a
- modern lot. He travelled back to China and to a play dated two
- thousand six hundred years before the Christian era. He said he
- would follow it up with a list of the previous plays of the kind,
- and in his innocence would have carried them back to the Flood.
- That is the most discouraging thing that has ever happened to me
- in my dramatic career. I have done a world of good in a silent and
- private way, and have furnished Sir Henry Irving with plays and
- plays and plays. What has he achieved through that influence? See
- where he stands now- on the summit of his art in two worlds- and it
- was I who put him there- that partly put him there.
- I need not enlarge upon the influence the drama has exerted upon
- civilization. It has made good morals entertaining. I am to be
- followed by Mr. Pinero. I conceive that we stand at the head of the
- profession. He has not written as many plays as I have, but he has had
- that God-given talent, which I lack, of working them off on the
- manager. I couple his name with this toast, and add the hope that
- his influence will be supported in exercising his masterly
- handicraft in that great gift, and that he will long live to
- continue his fine work.
- DINNER TO HAMILTON W. MABIE.
-
- ADDRESS DELIVERED APRIL 29, 1901.
-
- In introducing Mr. Clemens, Doctor Van Dyke said:
- "The longer the speaking goes on to-night the more I wonder how I
- got this job, and the only explanation I can give for it is that it is
- the same kind of compensation for the number of articles I have sent
- to The Outlook, to be rejected by Hamilton W. Mabie. There is one
- man here to-night that has a job cut out for him that none of you
- would have had- a man whose humor has put a girdle of light around the
- globe, and whose sense of humor has been an example for all five
- continents. He is going to speak to you. Gentlemen, you know him
- best as Mark Twain."
-
- MR. CHAIRMAN AND GENTLEMEN,- This man knows now how it feels to be
- the chief guest, and if he has enjoyed it he is the first man I have
- ever seen in that position that did enjoy it. And I know, by
- side-remarks which he made to me before his ordeal came upon him, that
- he was feeling as some of the rest of us have felt under the same
- circumstances. He was afraid that he would not do himself justice; but
- he did- to my surprise. It is a most serious thing to be a chief guest
- on an occasion like this, and it is admirable, it is fine. It is a
- great compliment to a man that he shall come out of it so gloriously
- as Mr. Mabie came out of it to-night- to my surprise. He did it well.
- He appears to be editor of The Outlook, and notwithstanding that,
- I have every admiration, because when everything is said concerning
- The Outlook, after all one must admit that it is frank in its
- delinquencies, that it is outspoken in its departures from fact,
- that it is vigorous in its mistaken criticisms of men like me. I
- have lived in this world a long, long time, and I know you must not
- judge a man by the editorials that he puts in his paper. A man is
- always better than his printed opinions. A man always reserves to
- himself on the inside a purity and an honesty and a justice that are a
- credit to him, whereas the things that he prints are just the reverse.
- Oh yes, you must not judge a man by what he writes in his paper.
- Even in an ordinary secular paper a man must observe some care about
- it; he must be better than the principles which he puts in print.
- And that is the case with Mr. Mabie. Why, to see what he writes
- about me and the missionaries you would think he did not have any
- principles. But that is Mr. Mabie in his public capacity. Mr. Mabie in
- his private capacity is just as clean a man as I am.
- In this very room, a month or two ago, some people admired that
- portrait; some admired this, but the great majority fastened on
- that, and said, "There is a portrait that is a beautiful piece of
- art." When that portrait is a hundred years old it will suggest what
- were the manners and customs in our time. Just as they talk about
- Mr. Mabie to-night, in that enthusiastic way, pointing out the various
- virtues of the man and the grace of his spirit, and all that, so was
- that portrait talked about. They were enthusiastic, just as we men
- have been over the character and the work of Mr. Mabie. And when
- they were through they said that portrait, fine as it is, that work,
- beautiful as it is, that piece of humanity on that canvas, gracious
- and fine as it is, does not rise to those perfections that exist in
- the man himself. Come up, Mr. Alexander. [The reference was to James
- W. Alexander, who happened to be sitting beneath the portrait of
- himself on the wall.] Now, I should come up and show myself. But he
- cannot do it, he cannot do it. He was born that way, he was reared
- in that way. Let his modesty be an example, and I wish some of you had
- it, too. But that is just what I have been saying- that portrait, fine
- as it is, is not as fine as the man it represents, and all the
- things that have been said about Mr. Mabie, and certainly they have
- been very nobly worded and beautiful, still fall short of the real
- Mabie.
- INTRODUCING NYE AND RILEY.
-
- James Whitcomb Riley and Edgar Wilson Nye (Bill Nye) were to give
- readings in Tremont Temple, Boston, November, 1888. Mr. Clemens was
- induced to introduce Messrs. Riley and Nye. His appearance on the
- platform was a surprise to the audience, and when they recognized
- him there was a tremendous demonstration.
-
- I AM very glad indeed to introduce these young people to you, and at
- the same time get acquainted with them myself. I have seen them more
- than once for a moment, but have not had the privilege of knowing them
- personally as intimately as I wanted to. I saw them first, a great
- many years ago, when Mr. Barnum had them, and they were just fresh
- from Siam. The ligature was their best hold then, the literature
- became their best hold later, when one of them committed an
- indiscretion, and they had to cut the old bond to accommodate the
- sheriff.
- In that old former time this one was Chang, that one was Eng. The
- sympathy existing between the two was most extraordinary; it was so
- fine, so strong, so subtle, that what the one ate the other
- digested; when one slept, the other snored; if one sold a thing, the
- other scooped the usufruct. This independent and yet dependent
- action was observable in all the details of their daily life- I mean
- this quaint and arbitrary distribution of originating cause and
- resulting effect between the two- between, I may say, this dynamo
- and the other always motor, or, in other words, that the one was
- always the creating force, the other always the utilizing force; no,
- no, for while it is true that within certain well-defined zones of
- activity the one was always dynamo and the other always motor,
- within certain other well-defined zones these positions became exactly
- reversed.
- For instance, in moral matters Mr. Chang Riley was always dynamo,
- Mr. Eng Nye was always motor; for while Mr. Chang Riley had a high- in
- fact, an abnormally high and fine- moral sense, he had no machinery to
- work it with; whereas, Mr. Eng Nye, who hadn't any moral sense at all,
- and hasn't yet, was equipped with all the necessary plant for
- putting a noble deed through, if he could only get the inspiration
- on reasonable terms outside.
- In intellectual matters, on the other hand, Mr. Eng Nye was always
- dynamo, Mr. Chang Riley was always motor; Mr. Eng Nye had a stately
- intellect, but couldn't make it go; Mr. Chang Riley hadn't, but could.
- That is to say, that while Mr. Chang Riley couldn't think things
- himself, he had a marvellous natural grace in setting them down and
- weaving them together when his pal furnished the raw material.
- Thus, working together, they made a strong team; laboring
- together, they could do miracles; but break the circuit, and both were
- impotent. It has remained so to this day: they must travel together,
- hoe, and plant, and plough, and reap, and sell their public
- together, or there's no result.
- I have made this explanation, this analysis, this vivisection, so to
- speak, in order that you may enjoy these delightful adventurers
- understandingly. When Mr. Eng Nye's deep and broad and limpid
- philosophies flow by in front of you, refreshing all the regions round
- about with their gracious floods, you will remember that it isn't
- his water; it's the other man's, and he is only working the pump.
- And when Mr. Chang Riley enchants your ear, and soothes your spirit,
- and touches your heart with the sweet and genuine music of his poetry-
- as sweet and as genuine as any that his friends, the birds and the
- bees, make about his other friends, the woods and the flowers- you
- will remember, while placing justice where justice is due, that it
- isn't his music, but the other man's- he is only turning the crank.
- I beseech for these visitors a fair field, a single-minded, one-eyed
- umpire, and a score bulletin barren of goose-eggs if they earn it- and
- I judge they will and hope they will. Mr. James Whitcomb Chang Riley
- will now go to the bat.
- DINNER TO WHITELAW REID.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE DINNER IN HONOR OF AMBASSADOR REID,
- GIVEN BY THE PILGRIMS' CLUB OF NEW YORK
- ON FEBRUARY 19, 1908.
-
- I AM very proud to respond to this toast, as it recalls the proudest
- day of my life. The delightful hospitality shown me at the time of
- my visit to Oxford I shall cherish until I die. In that long and
- distinguished career of mine I value that degree above all other
- honors. When the ship landed even the stevedores gathered on the shore
- and gave an English cheer. Nothing could surpass in my life the
- pleasure of those four weeks. No one could pass by me without taking
- my hand, even the policemen. I've been in all the principal capitals
- of Christendom in my life, and have always been an object of
- interest to policemen. Sometimes there was suspicion in their eyes,
- but not always. With their puissant hand they would hold up the
- commerce of the world to let me pass.
- I noticed in the papers this afternoon a despatch from Washington,
- saying that Congress would immediately pass a bill restoring to our
- gold coinage the motto "In God We Trust." I'm glad of that; I'm glad
- of that. I was troubled when that motto was removed. Sure enough,
- the prosperities of the whole nation went down in a heap when we
- ceased to trust in God in that conspicuously advertised way. I knew
- there would be trouble. And if Pierpont Morgan hadn't stepped in-
- Bishop Lawrence may now add to his message to the old country that
- we are now trusting in God again. So we can discharge Mr. Morgan
- from his office with honor.
- Mr. Reid said an hour or so ago something about my ruining my
- activities last summer. They are not ruined, they are renewed. I am
- stronger now- much stronger. I suppose that the spiritual uplift I
- received increased my physical power more than anything I ever had
- before. I was dancing last night at 12.30 o'clock.
- Mr. Choate has mentioned Mr. Reid's predecessors. Mr. Choate's
- head is full of history, and some of it is true, too. I enjoyed
- hearing him tell about the list of the men who had the place before he
- did. He mentioned a long list of those predecessors, people I never
- heard of before, and elected five of them to the Presidency by his own
- vote. I'm glad and proud to find Mr. Reid in that high position,
- because he didn't look it when I knew him forty years ago. I was
- talking to Reid the other day, and he showed me my autograph on an old
- paper twenty years old. I didn't know I had an autograph twenty
- years ago. Nobody ever asked me for it.
- I remember a dinner I had long ago with Whitelaw Reid and John Hay
- at Reid's expense. I had another last summer when I was in London at
- the embassy that Choate blackguards so. I'd like to live there.
- Some people say they couldn't live on the salary, but I could live
- on the salary and the nation together. Some of us don't appreciate
- what this country can do. There's John Hay, Reid, Choate, and me. This
- is the only country in the world where youth, talent, and energy can
- reach such heights. It shows what we could do without means, and
- what people can do with talent and energy when they find it in
- people like us.
- When I first came to New York they were all struggling young men,
- and I am glad to see that they have got on in the world. I knew John
- Hay when I had no white hairs in my head and more hair than Reid has
- now. Those were days of joy and hope. Reid and Hay were on the staff
- of the Tribune. I went there once in that old building, and I looked
- all around, and I finally found a door ajar and looked in. It wasn't
- Reid or Hay there, but it was Horace Greeley. Those were in the days
- when Horace Greeley was a king. That was the first time I ever saw him
- and the last.
- I was admiring him when he stopped and seemed to realize that
- there was a fine presence there somewhere. He tried to smile, but he
- was out of smiles. He looked at me a moment, and said:
- "What in H- do you want?"
- He began with that word "H." That's a long word and a profane
- word. I don't remember what the word was now, but I recognized the
- power of it. I had never used that language myself, but at that moment
- I was converted. It has been a great refuge for me in time of trouble.
- If a man doesn't know that language he can't express himself on
- strenuous occasions. When you have that word at your command let
- trouble come.
- But later Hay rose, and you know what summit Whitelaw Reid has
- reached, and you see me. Those two men have regulated troubles of
- nations and conferred peace upon mankind. And in my humble way, of
- which I am quite vain, I was the principal moral force in all those
- great international movements. These great men illustrated what I say.
- Look at us great people- we all come from the dregs of society. That's
- what can be done in this country. That's what this country does for
- you.
- Choate here- he hasn't got anything to say, but he says it just
- the same, and he can do it so felicitously, too. I said long ago he
- was the handsomest man America ever produced. May the progress of
- civilization always rest on such distinguished men as it has in the
- past!
- ROGERS AND RAILROADS.
-
- AT A BANQUET GIVEN MR. H. H. ROGERS BY THE BUSINESS
- MEN OF NORFOLK, VA., CELEBRATING THE OPENING
- OF THE VIRGINIAN RAILWAY, APRIL, 3, 1909.
-
- Toastmaster:
- "I have often thought that when the time comes, which must come to
- all of us, when we reach that Great Way in the Great Beyond, and the
- question is propounded, 'What have you done to gain admission into
- this great realm?' if the answer could be sincerely made, 'I have made
- men laugh,' it would be the surest passport to a welcome entrance.
- We have here to-night one who has made millions laugh- not the loud
- laughter that bespeaks the vacant mind, but the laugh of intelligent
- mirth that helps the human heart and the human mind. I refer, of
- course, to Doctor Clemens. I was going to say Mark Twain, his literary
- title, which is a household phrase in more homes than that of any
- other man, and you know him best by that dear old title."
-
- I THANK you, Mr. Toastmaster, for the compliment which you have paid
- me, and I am sure I would rather have made people laugh than cry,
- yet in my time I have made some of them cry; and before I stop
- entirely I hope to make some more of them cry. I like compliments. I
- deal in them myself. I have listened with the greatest pleasure to the
- compliments which the chairman has paid to Mr. Rogers and that road of
- his to-night, and I hope some of them are deserved.
- It is no small distinction to a man like that to sit here before
- an intelligent crowd like this and to be classed with Napoleon and
- Caesar. Why didn't he say that this was the proudest day of his
- life? Napoleon and Caesar are dead, and they can't be here to defend
- themselves. But I'm here!
- The chairman said, and very truly, that the most lasting thing in
- the hands of man are the roads which Caesar built, and it is true that
- he built a lot of them; and they are there yet.
- Yes, Caesar built a lot of roads in England, and you can find
- them. But Rogers has only built one road, and he hasn't finished
- that yet. I like to hear my old friend complimented, but I don't
- like to hear it overdone.
- I didn't go around to-day with the others to see what he is doing. I
- will do that in a quiet time, when there is not anything going on, and
- when I shall not be called upon to deliver intemperate compliments
- on a railroad in which I own no stock.
- They proposed that I go along with the committee and help inspect
- that dump down yonder. I didn't go. I saw that dump. I saw that
- thing when I was coming in on the steamer, and I didn't go because I
- was diffident, sentimentally diffident, about going and looking at
- that thing again- that great, long, bony thing; it looked just like
- Mr. Rogers's foot.
- The chairman says Mr. Rogers is full of practical wisdom, and he is.
- It is intimated here that he is a very ingenious man, and he is a very
- competent financier. Maybe he is now, but it was not always so. I know
- lots of private things in his life which people don't know, and I know
- how he started; and it was not a very good start. I could have done
- better myself. The first time he crossed the Atlantic he had just made
- the first little strike in oil, and he was so young he did not like to
- ask questions. He did not like to appear ignorant. To this day he
- don't like to appear ignorant, but he can look as ignorant as anybody.
- On board the ship they were betting on the run of the ship, betting
- a couple of shillings, or half a crown, and they proposed that this
- youth from the oil regions should bet on the run of the ship. He did
- not like to ask what a half-crown was, and he didn't know; but
- rather than be ashamed of himself he did bet half a crown on the run
- of the ship, and in bed he could not sleep. He wondered if he could
- afford that outlay in case he lost. He kept wondering over it, and
- said to himself: "A king's crown must be worth $20,000, so half a
- crown would cost $10,000." He could not afford to bet away $10,000
- on the run of the ship, so he went up to the stakeholder and gave
- him $150 to let him off.
- I like to hear Mr. Rogers complimented. I am not stingy in
- compliments to him myself. Why, I did it to-day when I sent his wife a
- telegram to comfort her. That is the kind of person I am. I knew she
- would be uneasy about him. I knew she would be solicitous about what
- he might do down here, so I did it to quiet her and to comfort her.
- I said he was doing well for a person out of practice. There is
- nothing like it. He is like I used to be. There were times when I
- was careless- careless in my dress when I got older. You know how
- uncomfortable your wife can get when you are going away without her
- superintendence. Once when my wife could not go with me (she always
- went with me when she could- I always did meet that kind of luck), I
- was going to Washington once, a long time ago, in Mr. Cleveland's
- first administration, and she could not go; but, in her anxiety that I
- should not desecrate the house, she made preparation. She knew that
- there was to be a reception of those authors at the White House at
- seven o'clock in the evening. She said, "If I should tell you now what
- I want to ask of you, you would forget it before you get to
- Washington, and, therefore, I have written it on a card, and you
- will find it in your dress-vest pocket when you are dressing at the
- Arlington- when you are dressing to see the President." I never
- thought of it again until I was dressing, and I felt in that pocket
- and took it out, and it said, in a kind of imploring way, "Don't
- wear your arctics in the White House."
- You complimented Mr. Rogers on his energy, his foresightedness,
- complimented him in various ways, and he has deserved those
- compliments, although I say it myself; and I enjoy them all. There
- is one side of Mr. Rogers that has not been mentioned. If you will
- leave that to me I will touch upon that. There was a note in an
- editorial in one of the Norfolk papers this morning that touched
- upon that very thing, that hidden side of Mr. Rogers, where it spoke
- of Helen Keller and her affection for Mr. Rogers, to whom she
- dedicated her life book. And she has a right to feel that way,
- because, without the public knowing anything about it, he rescued,
- if I may use that term, that marvellous girl, that wonderful
- Southern girl, that girl who was stone deaf, blind, and dumb from
- scarlet-fever when she was a baby eighteen months old; and who now
- is as well and thoroughly educated as any woman on this planet at
- twenty-nine years of age. She is the most marvellous person of her sex
- that has existed on this earth since Joan of Arc.
- That is not all Mr. Rogers has done; but you never see that side
- of his character, because it is never protruding; but he lends a
- helping hand daily out of that generous heart of his. You never hear
- of it. He is supposed to be a moon which has one side dark and the
- other bright. But the other side, though you don't see it, is not
- dark; it is bright, and its rays penetrate, and others do see it who
- are not God.
- I would take this opportunity to tell something that I have never
- been allowed to tell by Mr. Rogers, either by my mouth or in print,
- and if I don't look at him I can tell it now.
- In 1893, when the publishing company of Charles L. Webster, of which
- I was financial agent, failed, it left me heavily in debt. If you will
- remember what commerce was at that time you will recall that you could
- not sell anything, and could not buy anything, and I was on my back;
- my books were not worth anything at all, and I could not give away
- my copyrights. Mr. Rogers had long enough vision ahead to say, "Your
- books have supported you before, and after the panic is over they will
- support you again," and that was a correct proposition. He saved my
- copyrights, and saved me from financial ruin. He it was who arranged
- with my creditors to allow me to roam the face of the earth for four
- years and persecute the nations thereof with lectures, promising
- that at the end of four years I would pay dollar for dollar. That
- arrangement was made; otherwise I would now be living out-of-doors
- under an umbrella, and a borrowed one at that.
- You see his white mustache and his head trying to get white (he is
- always trying to look like me- I don't blame him for that). These
- are only emblematic of his character, and that is all. I say,
- without exception, hair and all, he is the whitest man I have ever
- known.
- THE OLD-FASHIONED PRINTER.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE TYPOTHETAE DINNER GIVEN AT DELMONICO'S,
- JANUARY 18, 1886, COMMEMORATING THE BIRTHDAY
- OF BENJAMIN FRANKLIN.
-
- Mr. Clemens responded to the toast "The Compositor."
-
- THE chairman's historical reminiscences of Gutenberg have caused
- me to fall into reminiscences, for I myself am something of an
- antiquity. All things change in the procession of years, and it may be
- that I am among strangers. It may be that the printer of to-day is not
- the printer of thirty-five years ago. I was no stranger to him. I knew
- him well. I built his fire for him in the winter mornings; I brought
- his water from the village pump; I swept out his office; I picked up
- his type from under his stand; and, if he were there to see, I put the
- good type in his case and the broken ones among the "hell matter"; and
- if he wasn't there to see, I dumped it all with the "pi" on the
- imposing-stone- for that was the furtive fashion of the cub, and I was
- a cub. I wetted down the paper Saturdays, I turned it Sundays- for
- this was a country weekly; I rolled, I washed the rollers, I washed
- the forms, I folded the papers, I carried them around at dawn Thursday
- mornings. The carrier was then an object of interest to all the dogs
- in town. If I had saved up all the bites I ever received, I could keep
- M. Pasteur busy for a year. I enveloped the papers that were for the
- mail- we had a hundred town subscribers and three hundred and fifty
- country ones; the town subscribers paid in groceries and the country
- ones in cabbages and cord-wood- when they paid at all, which was
- merely sometimes, and then we always stated the fact in the paper, and
- gave them a puff; and if we forgot it they stopped the paper. Every
- man on the town list helped edit the thing- that is, he gave orders as
- to how it was to be edited; dictated its opinions, marked out its
- course for it, and every time the boss failed to connect he stopped
- his paper. We were just infested with critics, and we tried to satisfy
- them all over. We had one subscriber who paid cash, and he was more
- trouble than all the rest. He bought us once a year, body and soul,
- for two dollars. He used to modify our politics every which way, and
- he made us change our religion four times in five years. If we ever
- tried to reason with him, he would threaten to stop his paper, and, of
- course, that meant bankruptcy and destruction. That man used to
- write articles a column and a half long, leaded long primer, and
- sign them "Junius," or "Veritas," or "Vox Populi," or some other
- high-sounding rot; and then, after it was set up, he would come in and
- say he had changed his mind- which was a gilded figure of speech,
- because he hadn't any- and order it to be left out. We couldn't afford
- "bogus" in that office, so we always took the leads out, altered the
- signature, credited the article to the rival paper in the next
- village, and put it in. Well, we did have one or two kinds of "bogus."
- Whenever there was a barbecue, or a circus, or a baptizing, we knocked
- off for half a day, and then to make up for short matter we would
- "turn over ads"- turn over the whole page and duplicate it. The
- other "bogus" was deep philosophical stuff, which we judged nobody
- ever read; so we kept a galley of it standing, and kept on slapping
- the same old batches of it in, every now and then, till it got
- dangerous. Also, in the early days of the telegraph we used to
- economize on the news. We picked out the items that were pointless and
- barren of information and stood them on a galley, and changed the
- dates and localities, and used them over and over again till the
- public interest in them was worn to the bone. We marked the ads, but
- we seldom paid any attention to the marks afterward; so the life of
- a "td" ad and a "tf" ad was equally eternal. I have seen a "td" notice
- of a sheriffs sale still booming serenely along two years after the
- sale was over, the sheriff dead, and the whole circumstance become
- ancient history. Most of the yearly ads were patent-medicine
- stereotypes, and we used to fence with them.
- I can see that printing-office of prehistoric times yet, with its
- horse bills on the walls, its "d" boxes clogged with tallow, because
- we always stood the candle in the "k" box nights, its towel, which was
- not considered soiled until it could stand alone, and other signs
- and symbols that marked the establishment of that kind in the
- Mississippi Valley; and I can see, also, the tramping "jour," who
- flitted by in the summer and tarried a day, with his wallet stuffed
- with one shirt and a hatful of handbills; for if he couldn't get any
- type to set he would do a temperance lecture. His way of life was
- simple, his needs not complex; all he wanted was plate and bed and
- money enough to get drunk on, and he was satisfied. But it may be,
- as I have said, that I am among strangers, and sing the glories of a
- forgotten age to unfamiliar ears, so I will "make even" and stop.
- SOCIETY OF AMERICAN AUTHORS.
-
- On November 15, 1900, the society gave a reception to Mr. Clemens,
- who came with his wife and daughter. So many members surrounded the
- guests that Mr. Clemens asked: "Is this genuine popularity or is it
- all a part of a prearranged programme?"
-
- CHAIRMAN, LADIES AND GENTLEMEN,- It seems a most difficult thing for
- any man to say anything about me that is not complimentary. I don't
- know what the charm is about me which makes it impossible for a person
- to say a harsh thing about me and say it heartily, as if he was glad
- to say it.
- If this thing keeps on it will make me believe that I am what
- these kind chairmen say of me. In introducing me, Judge Ransom spoke
- of my modesty as if he was envious of me. I would like to have one man
- come out flat-footed and say something harsh and disparaging of me,
- even if it were true. I thought at one time, as the learned judge
- was speaking, that I had found that man; but he wound up, like all the
- others, by saying complimentary things.
- I am constructed like everybody else, and enjoy a compliment as well
- as any other fool, but I do like to have the other side presented. And
- there is another side. I have a wicked side. Estimable friends who
- know all about it would tell you and take a certain delight in telling
- you things that I have done, and things further that I have not
- repented.
- The real life that I live, and the real life that I suppose all of
- you live, is a life of interior sin. That is what makes life
- valuable and pleasant. To lead a life of undiscovered sin! That is
- true joy.
- Judge Ransom seems to have all the virtues that he ascribes to me.
- But, oh my! if you could throw an X-ray through him. We are a pair.
- I have made a life-study of trying to appear to be what he seems to
- think I am. Everybody believes that I am a monument of all the
- virtues, but it is nothing of the sort. I am living two lives, and
- it keeps me pretty busy.
- Some day there will be a chairman who will forget some of these
- merits of mine, and then he will make a speech.
- I have more personal vanity than modesty, and twice as much veracity
- as the two put together.
- When that fearless and forgetful chairman is found there will be
- another story told. At the Press Club recently I thought that I had
- found him. He started in in the way that I knew I should be painted
- with all sincerity, and was leading to things that would not be to
- my credit; but when he said that he never read a book of mine I knew
- at once that he was a liar, because he never could have had all the
- wit and intelligence with which he was blessed unless he had read my
- works as a basis.
- I like compliments. I like to go home and tell them all over again
- to the members of my family. They don't believe them, but I like to
- tell them in the home circle, all the same. I like to dream of them if
- I can.
- I thank everybody for their compliments, but I don't think that I am
- praised any more than I am entitled to be.
- READING-ROOM OPENING.
-
- On October 13, 1900. Mr. Clemens made his last address preceding his
- departure for America at Kensal Rise, London.
-
- I FORMALLY declare this reading-room open, and I think that the
- legislature should not compel a community to provide itself with
- intelligent food, but give it the privilege of providing it if the
- community so desires.
- If the community is anxious to have a reading-room it would put
- its hand in its pocket and bring out the penny tax. I think it a proof
- of the healthy, moral, financial, and mental condition of the
- community if it taxes itself for its mental food.
- A reading-room is the proper introduction to a library, leading up
- through the newspapers and magazines to other literature. What would
- we do without newspapers?
- Look at the rapid manner in which the news of the Galveston disaster
- was made known to the entire world. This reminds me of an episode
- which occurred fifteen years ago when I was at church in Hartford,
- Connecticut.
- The clergyman decided to make a collection for the survivors, if
- any. He did not include me among the leading citizens who took the
- plates around for collection. I complained to the governor of his lack
- of financial trust in me, and he replied: "I would trust you myself-
- if you had a bell-punch."
- You have paid me many compliments, and I like to listen to
- compliments. I indorse all your chairman has said to you about the
- union of England and America. He also alluded to my name, of which I
- am rather fond.
- A little girl wrote me from New Zealand in a letter I received
- yesterday, stating that her father said my proper name was not Mark
- Twain but Samuel Clemens, but that she knew better, because Clemens
- was the name of the man who sold the patent medicine, and his name was
- not Mark. She was sure it was Mark Twain, because Mark is in the Bible
- and Twain is in the Bible.
- I was very glad to get that expression of confidence in my origin,
- and as I now know my name to be a scriptural one, I am not without
- hopes of making it worthy.
- LITERATURE
- LITERATURE.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE ROYAL LITERARY FUND BANQUET,
- LONDON, MAY 4, 1900.
-
- Anthony Hope introduced Mr. Clemens to make the response to the
- toast "Literature."
-
- MR. HOPE has been able to deal adequately with this toast without
- assistance from me. Still, I was born generous. If he had advanced any
- theories that needed refutation or correction I would have attended to
- them, and if he had made any statements stronger than those which he
- is in the habit of making I would have dealt with them.
- In fact, I was surprised at the mildness of his statements. I
- could not have made such statements if I had preferred to, because
- to exaggerate is the only way I can approximate to the truth. You
- cannot have a theory without principles. Principles is another name
- for prejudices. I have no prejudices in politics, religion,
- literature, or anything else.
- I am now on my way to my own country to run for the presidency
- because there are not yet enough candidates in the field, and those
- who have entered are too much hampered by their own principles,
- which are prejudices.
- I propose to go there to purify the political atmosphere. I am in
- favor of everything everybody is in favor of. What you should do is to
- satisfy the whole nation, not half of it, for then you would only be
- half a President.
- There could not be a broader platform than mine. I am in favor of
- anything and everything- of temperance and intemperance, morality
- and qualified immorality, gold standard and free silver.
- I have tried all sorts of things, and that is why I want to try
- the great position of ruler of a country. I have been in turn
- reporter, editor, publisher, author, lawyer, burglar. I have worked my
- way up, and wish to continue to do so.
- I read to-day in a magazine article that Christendom issued last
- year fifty-five thousand new books. Consider what that means!
- Fifty-five thousand new books meant fifty-four thousand new authors.
- We are going to have them all on our hands to take care of sooner or
- later. Therefore, double your subscriptions to the literary fund!
- DISAPPEARANCE OF LITERATURE.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE DINNER OF THE NINETEENTH CENTURY CLUB,
- AT SHERRY'S, NEW YORK, NOVEMBER 20, 1900.
-
- Mr. Clemens spoke to the toast "The Disappearance of Literature."
- Doctor Gould presided, and in introducing Mr. Clemens said that he
- (the speaker), when in Germany, had to do a lot of apologizing for a
- certain literary man who was taking what the Germans thought undue
- liberties with their language.
-
- IT wasn't necessary for your chairman to apologize for me in
- Germany. It wasn't necessary at all. Instead of that he ought to
- have impressed upon those poor benighted Teutons the service I
- rendered them. Their language had needed untangling for a good many
- years. Nobody else seemed to want to take the job, and so I took it,
- and I flatter myself that I made a pretty good job of it. The
- Germans have an inhuman way of cutting up their verbs. Now a verb
- has a hard time enough of it in this world when it's all together.
- It's downright inhuman to split it up. But that's just what those
- Germans do. They take part of a verb and put it down here, like a
- stake, and they take the other part of it and put it away over
- yonder like another stake, and between these two limits they just
- shovel in German. I maintain that there is no necessity for
- apologizing for a man who helped in a small way to stop such
- mutilation.
- We have heard a discussion to-night on the disappearance of
- literature. That's no new thing. That's what certain kinds of
- literature have been doing for several years. The fact is, my friends,
- that the fashion in literature changes, and the literary tailors
- have to change their cuts or go out of business. Professor
- Winchester here, if I remember fairly correctly what he said, remarked
- that few, if any, of the novels produced to-day would live as long
- as the novels of Walter Scott. That may be his notion. Maybe he is
- right; but so far as I am concerned, I don't care if they don't.
- Professor Winchester also said something about there being no modern
- epics like Paradise Lost. I guess he's right. He talked as if he was
- pretty familiar with that piece of literary work, and nobody would
- suppose that he never had read it. I don't believe any of you have
- ever read Paradise Lost, and you don't want to. That's something
- that you just want to take on trust. It's a classic, just as Professor
- Winchester says, and it meets his definition of a classic- something
- that everybody wants to have read and nobody wants to read.
- Professor Trent also had a good deal to say about the
- disappearance of literature. He said that Scott would outlive all
- his critics. I guess that's true. The fact of the business is,
- you've got to be one of two ages to appreciate Scott. When you're
- eighteen you can read Ivanhoe, and you want to wait until you are
- ninety to read some of the rest. It takes a pretty well-regulated,
- abstemious critic to live ninety years.
- But as much as these two gentlemen have talked about the
- disappearance of literature, they didn't say anything about my
- books. Maybe they think they've disappeared. If they do, that just
- shows their ignorance on the general subject of literature. I am not
- as young as I was several years ago, and maybe I'm not so fashionable,
- but I'd be willing to take my chances with Mr. Scott to-morrow morning
- in selling a piece of literature to the Century Publishing Company.
- And I haven't got much of a pull here, either. I often think that
- the highest compliment ever paid to my poor efforts was paid by Darwin
- through President Eliot, of Harvard College. At least, Eliot said it
- was a compliment, and I always take the opinion of great men like
- college presidents on all such subjects as that.
- I went out to Cambridge one day a few years ago and called on
- President Eliot. In the course of the conversation he said that he had
- just returned from England, and that he was very much touched by
- what he considered the high compliment Darwin was paying to my
- books, and he went on to tell me something like this:
- "Do you know that there is one room in Darwin's house, his
- bedroom, where the housemaid is never allowed to touch two things? One
- is a plant he is growing and studying while it grows" (it was one of
- those insect-devouring plants which consumed bugs and beetles and
- things for the particular delectation of Mr. Darwin) "and the other
- some books that lie on the night table at the head of his bed. They
- are your books, Mr. Clemens, and Mr. Darwin reads them every night
- to lull him to sleep."
- My friends, I thoroughly appreciated that compliment, and considered
- it the highest one that was ever paid to me. To be the means of
- soothing to sleep a brain teeming with bugs and squirming things
- like Darwin's was something that I had never hoped for, and now that
- he is dead I never hope to be able to do it again.
- THE NEW YORK PRESS CLUB DINNER.
-
- AT THE ANNUAL DINNER, NOVEMBER 13, 1900.
-
- Col. William L. Brown, the former editor of the Daily News, as
- president of the club, introduced Mr. Clemens as the principal
- ornament of American literature.
-
- I MUST say that I have already begun to regret that I left my gun at
- home. I've said so many times when a chairman has distressed me with
- just such compliments that the next time such a thing occurs I will
- certainly use a gun on that chairman. It is my privilege to compliment
- him in return. You behold before you a very, very old man. A cursory
- glance at him would deceive the most penetrating. His features seem to
- reveal a person dead to all honorable instincts- they seem to bear the
- traces of all the known crimes, instead of the marks of a life spent
- for the most part, and now altogether, in the Sunday-school- of a life
- that may well stand as an example to all generations that have risen
- or will riz- I mean to say, will rise. His private character is
- altogether suggestive of virtues which to all appearances he has
- not. If you examine his past history you will find it as deceptive
- as his features, because it is marked all over with waywardness and
- misdemeanor- mere effects of a great spirit upon a weak body- mere
- accidents of a great career. In his heart he cherishes every virtue on
- the list of virtues, and he practises them all- secretly- always
- secretly. You all know him so well that there is no need for him to be
- introduced here. Gentlemen, Colonel Brown.
- THE ALPHABET AND SIMPLIFIED SPELLING.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE DINNER GIVEN TO MR. CARNEGIE AT THE
- DEDICATION OF THE NEW YORK ENGINEERS' CLUB,
- DECEMBER 9, 1907.
-
- Mr. Clemens was introduced by the president of the club, who,
- quoting from the Mark Twain autobiography, recalled the day when the
- distinguished writer came to New York with $3 in small change in his
- pockets and a $10 bill sewed in his clothes.
-
- IT seems to me that I was around here in the neighborhood of the
- Public Library about fifty or sixty years ago. I don't deny the
- circumstance, although I don't see how you got it out of my
- autobiography, which was not to be printed until I am dead, unless I'm
- dead now. I had that $3 in change, and I remember well the $10 which
- was sewed in my coat. I have prospered since. Now I have plenty of
- money and a disposition to squander it, but I can't. One of those
- trust companies is taking care of it.
- Now, as this is probably the last time that I shall be out after
- nightfall this winter, I must say that I have come here with a
- mission, and I would make my errand of value.
- Many compliments have been paid to Mr. Carnegie to-night. I was
- expecting them. They are very gratifying to me.
- I have been a guest of honor myself, and I know what Mr. Carnegie is
- experiencing now. It is embarrassing to get compliments and
- compliments and only compliments, particularly when he knows as well
- as the rest of us that on the other side of him there are all sorts of
- things worthy of our condemnation.
- Just look at Mr. Carnegie's face. It is fairly scintillating with
- fictitious innocence. You would think, looking at him, that he had
- never committed a crime in his life. But no- look at his
- pestiferious simplified spelling. You can't any of you imagine what
- a crime that has been. Torquemada was nothing to Mr. Carnegie. That
- old fellow shed some blood in the Inquisition, but Mr. Carnegie has
- brought destruction to the entire race. I know he didn't mean it to be
- a crime, but it was, just the same. He's got us all so we can't
- spell anything.
- The trouble with him is that he attacked orthography at the wrong
- end. He meant well, but he attacked the symptoms and not the cause
- of the disease. He ought to have gone to work on the alphabet. There's
- not a vowel in it with a definite value, and not a consonant that
- you can hitch anything to. Look at the "h's" distributed all around.
- There's "gherkin." What are you going to do with the "h" in that? What
- the devil's the use of "h" in gherkin, I'd like to know. It's one
- thing I admire the English for: they just don't mind anything about
- them at all.
- But look at the "pneumatics" and the "pneumonias" and the rest of
- them. A real reform would settle them once and for all, and wind up by
- giving us an alphabet that we wouldn't have to spell with at all,
- instead of this present silly alphabet, which I fancy was invented
- by a drunken thief. Why, there isn't a man who doesn't have to throw
- out about fifteen hundred words a day when he writes his letters
- because he can't spell them! It's like trying to do a St. Vitus's
- dance with wooden legs.
- Now I'll bet there isn't a man here who can spell "pterodactyl," not
- even the prisoner at the bar. I'd like to hear him try once- but not
- in public, for it's too near Sunday, when all extravagant histrionic
- entertainments are barred. I'd like to hear him try in private, and
- when he got through trying to spell "pterodactyl" you wouldn't know
- whether it was a fish or a beast or a bird, and whether it flew on its
- legs or walked with its wings. The chances are that he would give it
- tusks and make it lay eggs.
- Let's get Mr. Carnegie to reform the alphabet, and we'll pray for
- him- if he'll take the risk.
- If we had adequate, competent vowels, with a system of accents,
- giving to each vowel its own soul and value, so every shade of that
- vowel would be shown in its accent, there is not a word in any
- tongue that we could not spell accurately. That would be competent,
- adequate, simplified spelling, in contrast to the clipping, the hair
- punching, the carbuncles, and the cancers which go by the name of
- simplified spelling. If I ask you what b-o-w spells you can't tell
- me unless you know which b-o-w I mean, and it is the same with
- r-o-w, b-o-r-e, and the whole family of words which were born out of
- lawful wedlock and don't know their own origin.
- Now, if we had an alphabet that was adequate and competent,
- instead of inadequate and incompetent, things would be different.
- Spelling reform has only made it bald-headed and unsightly. There is
- the whole tribe of them, "row" and "read" and "lead"- a whole family
- who don't know who they are. I ask you to pronounce s-o-w, and you ask
- me what kind of a one.
- If we had a sane, determinate alphabet, instead of a hospital of
- comminuted eunuchs, you would know whether one referred to the act
- of a man casting the seed over the ploughed land or whether one wished
- to recall the lady hog and the future ham.
- It's a rotten alphabet. I appoint Mr. Carnegie to get after it,
- and leave simplified spelling alone. Simplified spelling brought about
- sun-spots, the San Francisco earthquake, and the recent business
- depression, which we would never have had if spelling had been left
- all alone.
- Now, I hope I have soothed Mr. Carnegie and made him more
- comfortable than he would have been had he received only compliment
- after compliment, and I wish to say to him that simplified spelling is
- all right, but, like chastity, you can carry it too far.
- SPELLING AND PICTURES.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE ANNUAL DINNER OF THE ASSOCIATED PRESS,
- AT THE WALDORF-ASTORIA, SEPTEMBER 18, 1906.
-
- I AM here to make an appeal to the nations in behalf of the
- simplified spelling. I have come here because they cannot all be
- reached except through you. There are only two forces that can carry
- light to all the corners of the globe- only two- the sun in the
- heavens and the Associated Press down here. I may seem to be
- flattering the sun, but I do not mean it so; I am meaning only to be
- just and fair all around. You speak with a million voices; no one
- can reach so many races, so many hearts and intellects, as you- except
- Rudyard Kipling, and he cannot do it without your help. If the
- Associated Press will adopt and use our simplified forms, and thus
- spread them to the ends of the earth, covering the whole spacious
- planet with them as with a garden of flowers, our difficulties are
- at an end.
- Every day of the three hundred and sixty-five the only pages of
- the world's countless newspapers that are read by all the human beings
- and angels and devils that can read, are these pages that are built
- out of Associated Press despatches. And so I beg you, I beseech you-
- oh, I implore you to spell them in our simplified forms. Do this
- daily, constantly, persistently, for three months- only three
- months- it is all I ask. The infallible result?- victory, victory
- all down the line. For by that time all eyes here and above and
- below will have become adjusted to the change and in love with it, and
- the present clumsy and ragged forms will be grotesque to the eye and
- revolting to the soul. And we shall be rid of phthisis and phthisic
- and pneumonia and pneumatics, and diphtheria and pterodactyl, and
- all those other insane words which no man addicted to the simple
- Christian life can try to spell and not lose some of the bloom of
- his piety in the demoralizing attempt. Do not doubt it. We are
- chameleons, and our partialities and prejudices change places with
- an easy and blessed facility, and we are soon wonted to the change and
- happy in it. We do not regret our old, yellow fangs and snags and
- tushes after we have worn nice, fresh, uniform store teeth a while.
- Do I seem to be seeking the good of the world? That is the idea.
- It is my public attitude; privately I am merely seeking my own profit.
- We all do it, but it is sound and it is virtuous, for no public
- interest is anything other or nobler than a massed accumulation of
- private interests. In 1883, when the simplified-spelling movement
- first tried to make a noise, I was indifferent to it; more- I even
- irreverently scoffed at it. What I needed was an object-lesson, you
- see. It is the only way to teach some people. Very well, I got it.
- At that time I was scrambling along, earning the family's bread on
- magazine work at seven cents a word, compound words at single rates,
- just as it is in the dark present. I was the property of a magazine, a
- seven-cent slave under a boiler-iron contract. One day there came a
- note from the editor requiring me to write ten pages on this revolting
- text: "Considerations concerning the alleged subterranean holophotal
- extemporaneousness of the conchyliaceous superimbrication of the
- Ornithorhyncus, as foreshadowed by the unintelligibility of its
- plesiosaurian anisodactylous aspects."
- Ten pages of that. Each and every word a seventeen-jointed
- vestibuled railroad train. Seven cents a word. I saw starvation
- staring the family in the face. I went to the editor, and I took a
- stenographer along so as to have the interview down in black and
- white, for no magazine editor can ever remember any part of a business
- talk except the part that's got graft in it for him and the
- magazine. I said, "Read that text, Jackson, and let it go on the
- record; read it out loud." He read it: "Considerations concerning
- the alleged subterranean holophotal extemporaneousness of the
- conchyliaceous superimbrication of the Ornithorhyncus, as foreshadowed
- by the unintelligibility of its plesiosaurian anisodactylous aspects."
- I said, "You want ten pages of those rumbling, great, long, summer
- thunderpeals, and you expect to get them at seven cents a peal?"
- He said, "A word's a word, and seven cents is the contract; what are
- you going to do about it?" I said, "Jackson, this is cold-blooded
- oppression. What's an average English word?"
- He said, "Six letters."
- I said, "Nothing of the kind; that's French, and includes the spaces
- between the words; an average English word is four letters and a half.
- By hard, honest labor I've dug all the large words out of my
- vocabulary and shaved it down till the average is three letters and
- a half. I can put one thousand and two hundred words on your page, and
- there's not another man alive that can come within two hundred of
- it. My page is worth eighty-four dollars to me. It takes exactly as
- long to fill your magazine page with long words as it does with
- short ones- four hours. Now, then, look at the criminal injustice of
- this requirement of yours. I am careful, I am economical of my time
- and labor. For the family's sake I've got to be so. So I never write
- 'metropolis' for seven cents, because I can get the same money for
- 'city.' I never write 'policeman,' because I can get the same price
- for 'cop.' And so on and so on. I never write 'valetudinarian' at all,
- for not even hunger and wretchedness can humble me to the point
- where I will do a word like that for seven cents; I wouldn't do it for
- fifteen. Examine your obscene text, please, count the words."
- He counted and said it was twenty-four. I asked him to count the
- letters. He made it two hundred and three.
- I said, "Now, I hope you see the whole size of your crime. With my
- vocabulary I would make sixty words out of those two hundred and
- five letters, and get four dollars and twenty cents for it; whereas
- for your inhuman twenty-four I would get only one dollar and
- sixty-eight cents. Ten pages of these sky-scrapers of yours would
- pay me only about three hundred dollars; in my simplified vocabulary
- the same space and the same labor would pay me eight hundred and forty
- dollars. I do not wish to work upon this scandalous job by the
- piece. I want to be hired by the year." He coldly refused. I said:
- "Then for the sake of the family, if you have no feeling for me, you
- ought at least to allow me overtime on that word
- extemporaneousness." Again he coldly refused. I seldom say a harsh
- word to any one, but I was not master of myself then, and I spoke
- right out and called him an anisodactylous plesiosaurian
- conchyliaceous Ornithorhyneus, and rotten to the heart with holophotal
- subterranean extemporaneousness. God forgive me for that wanton crime;
- he lived only two hours.
- From that day to this I have been a devoted and hard-working
- member of the heaven-born institution, the International Association
- for the Prevention of Cruelty to Authors, and now I am laboring with
- Carnegie's Simplified Committee, and with my heart in the work....
- Now then, let us look at this mighty question reasonably,
- rationally, sanely- yes, and calmly, not excitedly. What is the real
- function, the essential function, the supreme function, of language?
- Isn't it merely to convey ideas and emotions? Certainly. Then if we
- can do it with words of fonetic brevity and compactness, why keep
- the present cumbersome forms? But can we? Yes. I hold in my hand the
- proof of it. Here is a letter written by a woman, right out of her
- heart of hearts. I think she never saw a spelling-book in her life.
- The spelling is her own. There isn't a waste letter in it anywhere. It
- reduces the fonetics to the last gasp- it squeezes the surplusage
- out of every word- there's no spelling that can begin with it on
- this planet outside of the White House. And as for the punctuation,
- there isn't any. It is all one sentence, eagerly and breathlessly
- uttered, without break or pause in it anywhere. The letter is
- absolutely genuine- I have the proofs of that in my possession. I
- can't stop to spell the words for you, but you can take the letter
- presently and comfort your eyes with it. I will read the letter:
- "Miss- dear friend I took some Close into the armerry and give
- them to you to Send too the suffrers out to California and i Hate to
- truble you but i got to have one of them Back it was a black oll wolle
- Shevyott With a jacket to Mach trimed Kind of Fancy no 38 Burst
- measure and passy menterry acrost the front And the color i woodent
- Trubble you but it belonged to my brothers wife and she is Mad about
- it i thoght she was willin but she want she says she want done with it
- and she was going to Wear it a Spell longer she ant so free harted
- as what i am and she Has got more to do with Than i have having a
- Husband to Work and slave For her i gess you remember Me I am shot and
- stout and light complected i torked with you quite a spell about the
- suffrars and said it was orful about that erth quake I shoodent wondar
- if they had another one rite off seeine general Condision of the
- country is Kind of Explossive i hate to take that Black dress away
- from the suffrars but i will hunt round And see if i can get another
- One if i can i will call to the armerry for it if you will jest lay it
- asside so no more at present from your True friend
- i liked your
- appearance very Much"
- Now you see what simplified spelling can do.
- It can convey any fact you need to convey; and it can pour out
- emotions like a sewer. I beg you, I beseech you, to adopt our
- spelling, and print all your despatches in it.
- Now I wish to say just one entirely serious word:
- I have reached a time of life, seventy years and a half, where
- none of the concerns of this world have much interest for me
- personally. I think I can speak dispassionately upon this matter,
- because in the little while that I have got to remain here I can get
- along very well with these old-fashioned forms, and I don't propose to
- make any trouble about it at all. I shall soon be where they won't
- care how I spell so long as I keep the Sabbath.
- There are eighty-two millions of us people that use this
- orthography, and it ought to be simplified in our behalf, but it is
- kept in its present condition to satisfy one million people who like
- to have their literature in the old form. That looks to me to be
- rather selfish, and we keep the forms as they are while we have got
- one million people coming in here from foreign countries every year
- and they have got to struggle with this orthography of ours, and it
- keeps them back and damages their citizenship for years until they
- learn to spell the language, if they ever do learn. This is merely
- sentimental argument.
- People say it is the spelling of Chaucer and Spenser and Shakespeare
- and a lot of other people who do not know how to spell anyway, and
- it has been transmitted to us and we preserved it and wish to preserve
- it because of its ancient and hallowed associations.
- Now, I don't see that there is any real argument about that. If that
- argument is good, then it would be a good argument not to banish the
- flies and the cockroaches from hospitals because they have been
- there so long that the patients have got used to them and they feel
- a tenderness for them on account of the associations. Why, it is
- like preserving a cancer in a family because it is a family cancer,
- and we are bound to it by the test of affection and reverence and old,
- mouldy antiquity.
- I think that this declaration to improve this orthography of ours is
- our family cancer, and I wish we could reconcile ourselves to have
- it cut out and let the family cancer go.
- Now, you see before you the wreck and ruin of what was once a
- young person like yourselves. I am exhausted by the heat of the day. I
- must take what is left of this wreck and run out of your presence
- and carry it away to my home and spread it out there and sleep the
- sleep of the righteous. There is nothing much left of me but my age
- and my righteousness, but I leave with you my love and my blessing,
- and may you always keep your youth.
- BOOKS AND BURGLARS.
-
- ADDRESS TO THE REDDING (CONN.) LIBRARY ASSOCIATION,
- OCTOBER 28, 1908.
-
- SUPPOSE this library had been in operation a few weeks ago, and
- the burglars who happened along and broke into my house- taking a
- lot of things they didn't need, and for that matter which I didn't
- need- had first made entry into this institution.
- Picture them seated here on the floor, poring by the light of
- their dark-lanterns over some of the books they found, and thus
- absorbing moral truths and getting a moral uplift. The whole course of
- their lives would have been changed. As it was, they kept straight
- on in their immoral way and were sent to jail.
- For all we know, they may next be sent to Congress.
- And, speaking of burglars, let us not speak of them too harshly.
- Now, I have known so many burglars- not exactly known, but so many
- of them have come near me in my various dwelling-places, that I am
- disposed to allow them credit for whatever good qualities they
- possess.
- Chief among these, and, indeed, the only one I just now think of, is
- their great care while doing business to avoid disturbing people's
- sleep.
- Noiseless as they may be while at work, however, the effect of their
- visitation is to murder sleep later on.
- Now we are prepared for these visitors. All sorts of alarm devices
- have been put in the house, and the ground for half a mile around it
- has been electrified. The burglar who steps within this danger zone
- will set loose a bedlam of sounds, and spring into readiness for
- action our elaborate system of defences. As for the fate of the
- trespasser, do not seek to know that. He will never be heard of more.
- AUTHORS' CLUB.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE DINNER GIVEN IN HONOR OF MR. CLEMENS,
- LONDON, JUNE, 1899.
-
- Mr. Clemens was introduced by Sir Walter Besant.
-
- IT does not embarrass me to hear my books praised so much. It only
- pleases and delights me. I have not gone beyond the age when
- embarrassment is possible, but I have reached the age when I know
- how to conceal it. It is such a satisfaction to me to hear Sir
- Walter Besant, who is much more capable than I to judge of my work,
- deliver a judgment which is such a contentment to my spirit.
- Well, I have thought well of the books myself, but I think more of
- them now. It charms me also to hear Sir Spencer Walpole deliver a
- similar judgment, and I shall treasure his remarks also. I shall not
- discount the praises in any possible way. When I report them to my
- family they shall lose nothing. There are, however, certain heredities
- which come down to us which our writings of the present day may be
- traced to. I, for instance, read the Walpole Letters when I was a boy.
- I absorbed them, gathered in their grace, wit, and humor, and put them
- away to be used by-and-by. One does that so unconsciously with
- things one really likes. I am reminded now of what use those letters
- have been to me.
- They must not claim credit in America for what was really written in
- another form so long ago. They must only claim that I trimmed this,
- that, and the other, and so changed their appearance as to make them
- seem to be original. You now see what modesty I have in stock. But
- it has taken long practice to get it there.
- But I must not stand here talking. I merely meant to get up and give
- my thanks for the pleasant things that preceding speakers have said of
- me. I wish also to extend my thanks to the Authors' Club for
- constituting me a member, at a reasonable price per year, and for
- giving me the benefit of your legal adviser.
- I believe you keep a lawyer. I have always kept a lawyer, too,
- though I have never made anything out of him. It is service to an
- author to have a lawyer. There is something so disagreeable in
- having a personal contact with a publisher. So it is better to work
- through a lawyer- and lose your case. I understand that the publishers
- have been meeting together also like us. I don't know what for, but
- possibly they are devising new and mysterious ways for remunerating
- authors. I only wish now to thank you for electing me a member of this
- club- I believe I have paid my dues- and to thank you again for the
- pleasant things you have said of me.
- Last February, when Rudyard Kipling was ill in America, the sympathy
- which was poured out to him was genuine and sincere, and I believe
- that which cost Kipling so much will bring England and America
- closer together. I have been proud and pleased to see this growing
- affection and respect between the two countries. I hope it will
- continue to grow, and, please God, it will continue to grow. I trust
- we authors will leave to posterity, if we have nothing else to
- leave, a friendship between England and America that will count for
- much. I will now confess that I have been engaged for the past eight
- days in compiling a publication. I have brought it here to lay at your
- feet. I do not ask your indulgence in presenting it, but for your
- applause.
- Here it is: "Since England and America may be joined together in
- Kipling, may they not be severed in 'Twain.'"
- BOOKSELLERS
- BOOKSELLERS.
-
- Address at banquet on Wednesday evening, May 20, 1908, of the
- American Booksellers' Association, which included most of the
- leading booksellers of America, held at the rooms of the Aldine
- Association, New York.
-
- THIS annual gathering of booksellers from all over America comes
- together ostensibly to eat and drink, but really to discuss
- business; therefore I am required to talk shop. I am required to
- furnish a statement of the indebtedness under which I lie to you
- gentlemen for your help in enabling we to earn my living. For
- something over forty years I have acquired my bread by print,
- beginning with The Innocents Abroad, followed at intervals of a year
- or so by Roughing It, Tom Sawyer, Gilded Age, and so on. For
- thirty-six years my books were sold by subscription. You are not
- interested in those years, but only in the four which have since
- followed. The books passed into the hands of my present publishers
- at the beginning of 1904, and you then became the providers of my
- diet. I think I may say, without flattering you, that you have done
- exceedingly well by me. Exceedingly well is not too strong a phrase,
- since the official statistics show that in four years you have sold
- twice as many volumes of my venerable books as my contract with my
- publishers bound you and them to sell in five years. To your sorrow
- you are aware that frequently, much too frequently, when a book gets
- to be five or ten years old its annual sale shrinks to two or three
- hundred copies, and after an added ten or twenty years ceases to sell.
- But you sell thousands of my moss-backed old books every year- the
- youngest of them being books that range from fifteen to twenty-seven
- years old, and the oldest reaching back to thirty-five and forty.
- By the terms of my contract my publishers had to account to me for
- 50,000 volumes per year for five years, and pay me for them whether
- they sold them or not. It is at this point that you gentlemen come in,
- for it was your business to unload 250,000 volumes upon the public
- in five years if you possibly could. Have you succeeded? Yes, you
- have- and more. For in four years, with a year still to spare, you
- have sold the 250,000 volumes, and 240,000 besides.
- Your sales have increased each year. In the first year you sold
- 90,328, in the second year, 104,851; in the third, 133,975; in the
- fourth year- which was last year- you sold 160,000. The aggregate
- for the four years is 500,000 volumes lacking 11,000.
- Of the oldest book, The Innocents Abroad,- now forty years old-
- you sold upward of 46,000 copies in the four years; of Roughing It-
- now thirty-eight years old, I think- you sold 40,334; of Tom Sawyer,
- 41,000. And so on.
- And there is one thing that is peculiarly gratifying to me: the
- Personal Recollections of Joan of Arc is a serious book; I wrote it
- for love, and never expected it to sell, but you have pleasantly
- disappointed me in that matter. In youth hands its sale has
- increased each year. In 1904 you sold 1726 copies; in 1905, 2445; in
- 1906, 5381; and last year, 6574.
- "MARK TWAIN'S FIRST APPEARANCE."
-
- On October 5, 1906, Mr. Clemens, following a musical recital by
- his daughter in Norfolk, Conn., addressed her audience on the
- subject of stage-fright. He thanked the people for making things as
- easy as possible for his daughter's American debut as a contralto, and
- then told of his first experience before the public.
-
- MY heart goes out in sympathy to any one who is making his first
- appearance before an audience of human beings. By a direct process
- of memory I go back forty years, less one month- for I'm older than
- I look.
- I recall the occasion of my first appearance. San Francisco knew
- me then only as a reporter, and I was to make my bow to San
- Francisco as a lecturer. I knew that nothing short of compulsion would
- get me to the theatre. So I bound myself by a hard-and-fast contract
- so that I could not escape. I got to the theatre forty-five minutes
- before the hour set for the lecture. My knees were shaking so that I
- didn't know whether I could stand up. If there is an awful, horrible
- malady in the world, it is stage-fright- and sea-sickness. They are
- a pair. I had stage-fright then for the first and last time. I was
- only seasick once, too. It was on a little ship on which there were
- two hundred other passengers. I- was- sick. I was so sick that there
- wasn't any left for those other two hundred passengers.
- It was dark and lonely behind the scenes in that theatre, and I
- peeked through the little peek-holes they have in theatre curtains and
- looked into the big auditorium. That was dark and empty, too.
- By-and-by it lighted up, and the audience began to arrive.
- I had got a number of friends of mine, stalwart men, to sprinkle
- themselves through the audience armed with big clubs. Every time I
- said anything they could possibly guess I intended to be funny they
- were to pound those clubs on the floor. Then there was a kind lady
- in a box up there, also a good friend of mine, the wife of the
- Governor. She was to watch me intently, and whenever I glanced
- toward her she was going to deliver a gubernatorial laugh that would
- lead the whole audience into applause.
- At last I began. I had the manuscript tucked under a United States
- flag in front of me where I could get at it in case of need. But I
- managed to get started without it. I walked up and down- I was young
- in those days and needed the exercise- and talked and talked.
- Right in the middle of the speech I had placed a gem. I had put in a
- moving, pathetic part which was to get at the hearts and souls of my
- hearers. When I delivered it they did just what I hoped and
- expected. They sat silent and awed. I had touched them. Then I
- happened to glance up at the box where the Governor's wife was- you
- know what happened.
- Well, after the first agonizing five minutes, my stage-fright left
- me, never to return. I know if I was going to be hanged I could get up
- and make a good showing, and I intend to. But I shall never forget
- my feelings before the agony left me, and I got up here to thank you
- for her for helping my daughter, by your kindness, to live through her
- first appearance. And I want to thank you for your appreciation of her
- singing, which is, by-the-way, hereditary.
- MORALS AND MEMORY.
-
- Mr. Clemens was the guest of honor at a reception held at Barnard
- College (Columbia University), March 7, 1906, by the Barnard Union.
- One of the young ladies presented Mr. Clemens, and thanked him for his
- amiability in coming to make them an address. She closed with the
- expression of the great joy it gave her fellow-collegians, "because we
- all love you."
-
- IF any one here loves me, she has my sincere thanks. Nay, if any one
- here is so good as to love me- why, I'll be a brother to her. She
- shall have my sincere, warm, unsullied affection. When I was coming up
- in the car with the very kind young lady who was delegated to show
- me the way, she asked me what I was going to talk about. And I said
- I wasn't sure. I said I had some illustrations, and I was going to
- bring them in. I said I was certain to give those illustrations, but
- that I hadn't the faintest notion what they were going to illustrate.
- Now, I've been thinking it over in this forest glade [indicating the
- woods of Arcady on the scene setting], and I've decided to work them
- in with something about morals and the caprices of memory. That
- seems to me to be a pretty good subject. You see, everybody has a
- memory and it's pretty sure to have caprices. And, of course,
- everybody has morals.
- It's my opinion that every one I know has morals, though I
- wouldn't like to ask. I know I have. But I'd rather teach them than
- practice them any day. "Give them to others"- that's my motto. Then
- you never have any use for them when you're left without. Now,
- speaking of the caprices of memory in general, and of mine in
- particular, it's strange to think of all the tricks this little mental
- process plays on us. Here we're endowed with a faculty of mind that
- ought to be more supremely serviceable to us than them all. And what
- happens? This memory of ours stores up a perfect record of the most
- useless facts and anecdotes and experiences. And all the things that
- we ought to know- that we need to know- that we'd profit by knowing-
- it casts aside with the careless indifference of a girl refusing her
- true lover. It's terrible to think of this phenomenon. I tremble in
- all my members when I consider all the really valuable things that
- I've forgotten in seventy years- when I meditate upon the caprices
- of my memory.
- There's a bird out in California that is one perfect symbol of the
- human memory. I've forgotten the bird's name (just because it would be
- valuable for me to know it- to recall it to your own minds, perhaps).
- But this fool of a creature goes around collecting the most
- ridiculous things you can imagine and storing them up. He never
- selects a thing that could ever prove of the slightest help to him;
- but he goes about gathering iron forks, and spoons, and tin cans,
- and broken mouse-traps- all sorts of rubbish that is difficult for him
- to carry and yet be any use when he gets it. Why, that bird will go by
- a gold watch to bring back one of those patent cake-pans.
- Now, my mind is just like that, and my mind isn't very different
- from yours- and so our minds are just like that bird. We pass by
- what would be of inestimable value to us, and pack our memories with
- the most trivial odds and ends that never by any chance, under any
- circumstances whatsoever, could be of the slightest use to any one.
- Now, things that I have remembered are constantly popping into my
- head. And I am repeatedly startled by the vividness with which they
- recur to me after the lapse of years and their utter uselessness in
- being remembered at all.
- I was thinking over some on my way up here. They were the
- illustrations I spoke about to the young lady on the way up. And
- I've come to the conclusion, curious though it is, that I can use
- every one of these freaks of memory to teach you all a lesson. I'm
- convinced that each one has its moral. And I think it's my duty to
- hand the moral on to you.
- Now, I recall that when I was a boy I was a good boy- I was a very
- good boy. Why, I was the best boy in my school. I was the best boy
- in that little Mississippi town where I lived. The population was only
- about twenty million. You may not believe it, but I was the best boy
- in that State- and in the United States, for that matter.
- But I don't know why I never heard any one say that but myself. I
- always recognized it. But even those nearest and dearest to me
- couldn't seem to see it. My mother, especially, seemed to think
- there was something wrong with that estimate. And she never got over
- that prejudice.
- Now, when my mother got to be eighty-five years old her memory
- failed her. She forgot little threads that hold life's patches of
- meaning together. She was living out West then, and I went on to visit
- her.
- I hadn't seen my mother in a year or so. And when I got there she
- knew my face; knew I was married; knew I had a family, and that I
- was living, with them. But she couldn't, for the life of her, tell
- my name or who I was. So I told her I was her boy.
- "But you don't live with me," she said.
- "No," said I, "I'm living in Rochester."
- "What are you doing there?"
- "Going to school."
- "Large school?"
- "Very large."
- "All boys?"
- "All boys."
- "And how do you stand?" said my mother.
- "I'm the best boy in that school," I answered.
- "Well," said my mother, with a return of her old fire, "I'd like
- to know what the other boys are like."
- Now, one point in this story is the fact that my mother's mind
- went back to my school days, and remembered my little youthful
- self-prejudice when she'd forgotten everything else about me.
- The other point is the moral. There's one there that you will find
- if you search for it.
- Now, here's something else I remember. It's about the first time I
- ever stole a watermelon. "Stole" is a strong word. Stole? Stole? No, I
- don't mean that. It was the first time I ever withdrew a watermelon.
- It was the first time I ever extracted a watermelon. That is exactly
- the word I want- "extracted." It is definite. It is precise. It
- perfectly conveys my idea. Its use in dentistry connotes the
- delicate shade of meaning I am looking for. You know we never
- extract our own teeth.
- And it was not my watermelon that I extracted. I extracted that
- watermelon from a farmer's wagon while he was inside negotiating
- with another customer. I carried that watermelon to one of the
- secluded recesses of the lumber-yard, and there I broke it open.
- It was a green watermelon.
- Well, do you know when I saw that I began to feel sorry- sorry-
- sorry. It seemed to me that I had done wrong. I reflected deeply. I
- reflected that I was young- I think I was just eleven. But I knew that
- though immature I did not lack moral advancement. I knew what a boy
- ought to do who had extracted a watermelon like that.
- I considered George Washington, and what action he would have
- taken under similar circumstances. Then I knew there was just one
- thing to make me feel right inside, and that was- Restitution.
- So I said to myself: "I will do that. I will take that green
- watermelon back where I got it from." And the minute I had said it I
- felt that great moral uplift that comes to you when you've made a
- noble resolution.
- So I gathered up the biggest fragments, and I carried them back to
- the farmer's wagon, and I restored the watermelon- what was left of
- it. And I made him give me a good one in place of it, too.
- And I told him he ought to be ashamed of himself going around
- working off his worthless, old, green watermelons on trusting
- purchasers who had to rely on him. How could they tell from the
- outside whether the melons were good or not? That was his business.
- And if he didn't reform, I told him I'd see that he didn't get my more
- of my trade- nor anybody else's I knew, if I could help it.
- You know that man was as contrite as a revivalist's last convert. He
- said be was all broken up to think I'd gotten a green watermelon. He
- promised me he would never carry another green watermelon if he
- starved for it. And he drove off- a better man.
- Now, do you see what I did for that man? He was on a downward
- path, and I rescued him. But all I got out of it was a watermelon.
- Yet I'd rather have that memory- just that memory of the good I
- did for that depraved farmer- than all the material gain you can think
- of. Look at the lesson he got! I never got anything like that from it.
- But I ought to be satisfied. I was only eleven years old, but I
- secured everlasting benefit to other people.
- The moral in this is perfectly clear, and I think there's one in the
- next memory I'm going to tell you about.
- To go back to my childhood, there's another little incident that
- comes to me from which you can draw even another moral. It's about one
- of the times I went fishing. You see, in our house there was a sort of
- family prejudice against going fishing if you hadn't permission. But
- it would frequently be bad judgment to ask. So I went fishing
- secretly, as it were- way up the Mississippi. It was an exquisitely
- happy trip, I recall, with a very pleasant sensation.
- Well, while I was away there was a tragedy in our town. A
- stranger, stopping over on his way East from California, was stabbed
- to death in an unseemly brawl.
- Now, my father was justice of the peace, and because he was
- justice of the peace he was coroner; and since he was coroner he was
- also constable; and being constable he was sheriff; and out of
- consideration for his holding the office of sheriff he was likewise
- county clerk and a dozen other officials I don't think of just this
- minute.
- I thought he had power of life or death; only he didn't use it
- over other boys. He was sort of an austere man. Somehow I didn't
- like being round him when I'd done anything he disapproved of. So
- that's the reason I wasn't often around.
- Well, when this gentleman got knifed they communicated with the
- proper authority, the coroner, and they laid the corpse out in the
- coroner's office- our front sitting-room- in preparation for the
- inquest the next morning.
- About 9 or 10 o'clock I got back from fishing. It was a little too
- late for me to be received by my folks, so I took my shoes off and
- slipped noiselessly up the back way to the sitting-room. I was very
- tired, and I didn't wish to disturb my people. So I groped my way to
- the sofa and lay down.
- Now, I didn't know anything of what had happened during my
- absence. But I was sort of nervous on my own account- afraid of
- being caught, and rather dubious about the morning affair. And I had
- been lying there a few moments when my eyes gradually got used to
- the darkness, and I became aware of something on the other side of the
- room.
- It was something foreign to the apartment. It had an uncanny
- appearance. And I sat up looking very hard, and wondering what in
- heaven this long, formless, vicious-looking thing might be.
- First I thought I'd go and see. Then I thought, "Never mind that."
- Mind you, I had no cowardly sensations whatever, but it didn't
- seem exactly prudent to investigate. But I somehow couldn't keep my
- eyes off the thing. And the more I looked at it the more
- disagreeably it grew on me. But I was resolved to play the man. So I
- decided to turn over and count a hundred, and let the patch of
- moonlight creep up and show me what the dickens it was.
- Well, I turned over and tried to count, but I couldn't keep my
- mind on it. I kept thinking of that grewsome mass. I was losing
- count all the time, and going back and beginning over again. Oh no;
- I wasn't frightened- just annoyed. But by the time I'd gotten to the
- century mark I turned cautiously over and opened my eyes with great
- fortitude.
- The moonlight revealed to me a marble-white human hand. Well,
- maybe I wasn't embarrassed! But then that changed to a creepy
- feeling again, and I thought I'd try the counting again. I don't
- know how many hours or weeks it was that I lay there counting hard.
- But the moonlight crept up that white arm, and it showed me a lead
- face and a terrible wound over the heart.
- I could scarcely say that I was terror-stricken or anything like
- that. But somehow his eyes interested me so that I went right out of
- the window. I didn't need the sash. But it seemed easier to take it
- than leave it behind.
- Now, let that teach you a lesson- I don't know just what it is.
- But at seventy years old I find that memory of peculiar value to me. I
- have been unconsciously guided by it all these years. Things that
- seemed pigeon-holed and remote are a perpetual influence. Yes,
- you're taught in so many ways. And you're so felicitously taught
- when you don't know it.
- Here's something else that taught me a good deal.
- When I was seventeen I was very bashful, and a sixteen-year-old girl
- came to stay a week with us. She was a peach, and I was seized with
- a happiness not of this world.
- One evening my mother suggested that, to entertain her, I take I
- take her to the theatre. I didn't really like to, because I was
- seventeen and sensitive about appearing in the streets With a girl.
- I couldn't see my way to enjoying my delight in public. But we went.
- I didn't feel very happy. I couldn't seem to keep my mind on the
- play. I became unconscious after a while, that that was due less to my
- lovely company than my boots. They were sweet to look upon, as
- smooth as skin, but fitted ten times as close. I got oblivious to
- the play and the girl and the other people and everything but my boots
- until I hitched one partly off. The sensation was sensuously
- perfect. I couldn't help it. I had to get the other off, partly.
- Then I was obliged to get them off altogether, except that I kept my
- feet in the legs so they couldn't get away.
- From that time I enjoyed the play. But the first thing I knew the
- curtain came down, like that, without my notice, and I hadn't any
- boots on. I tugged strenuously. And the people in our row got up and
- fussed and said things until the peach and I simply had to move on.
- We moved- the girl on one arm and the boots under the other.
- We walked home that way, sixteen blocks, with a retinue a mile long.
- Every time we passed a lamp-post death gripped me at the throat. But
- we got home- and I had on white socks.
- If I live to be nine hundred and ninety-nine years old I don't
- suppose I could ever forget that walk. I remember it about as keenly
- as the chagrin I suffered on another occasion.
- At one time in our domestic history we had a colored butler who
- had a failing. He could never remember to ask people who came to the
- door to state their business. So I used to buffer a good many calls
- unnecessarily.
- One morning when I was especially busy he brought me a card engraved
- With a name I did not know. So I said, "What does he wish to see me
- for?" and Sylvester said, "Ah couldn't ask him, sah; he wuz a
- genlmun." "Return instantly," I thundered, "and inquire his mission.
- Ask him what's his game." Well, Sylvester returned with the
- announcement that he had lightning-rods to sell. "Indeed," said I,
- "things are coming to a fine pass when lightning-rod agents send up
- engraved cards." "He has pictures," added Sylvester. "Pictures,
- indeed! He may be peddling etchings. Has he a Russia leather case?"
- But Sylvester was too frightened to remember. I said, "I am going down
- to make it hot for that upstart!"
- I went down the stairs, working up my temper all the way. When I got
- to the parlor I was in a fine frenzy concealed beneath a veneer of
- frigid courtesy. And when I looked in the door, sure enough he had a
- Russia leather case in his hand. But I didn't happen to notice that it
- was our Russia leather case.
- And if you'd believe me, that man was sitting with a whole gallery
- of etchings spread out before him. But I didn't happen to notice
- that they were our etchings, spread out by some member of my family
- for some unguessed purpose.
- Very curtly I asked the gentleman his business. With a surprised,
- timid manner he faltered that he had met my wife and daughter at
- Onteora, and they had asked him to call. Fine lie, I thought, and I
- froze him.
- He seemed to be kind of nonplussed, and sat there fingering the
- etchings in the case until I told him he needn't bother, because we
- had those. That pleased him so much that he leaned over, in an
- embarrassed way, to pick up another from the floor. But I stopped him.
- I said, "We've got that, too." He seemed pitifully amazed, but I was
- congratulating myself on my great success.
- Finally the gentleman asked where Mr. Winton lived; he'd met him
- in the mountains, too. So I said I'd show him gladly. And I did on the
- spot. And when he was gone I felt queer, because there were all his
- etchings spread out on the floor.
- Well, my wife came in and asked me who had been in. I showed her the
- card, and told her all exultantly. To my dismay she nearly fainted.
- She told me he had been a most kind friend to them in the country, and
- had forgotten to tell me that he was expected our way. And she
- pushed me out of the door, and commanded me to get over to the Wintons
- in a hurry and get him back.
- I came into the drawing-room, where Mrs. Winton was sitting up
- very stiff in a chair, beating me at my own game. Well, I began to put
- another light on things. Before many seconds Mrs. Winton saw it was
- time to change her temperature. In five minutes I had asked the man to
- luncheon, and she to dinner, and so on.
- We made that fellow change his trip and stay a week, and we gave him
- the time of his life. Why, I don't believe we let him get sober the
- whole time.
- I trust that you will carry away some good thought from these
- lessons I have given you, and that the memory of them will inspire you
- to higher things, and elevate you to plans far above the old- and-
- and-
- And I tell you one thing, young ladies: I've had a better time
- with you to-day than with that peach fifty-three years ago.
- QUEEN VICTORIA.
-
- ADDRESS TO THE BRITISH SCHOOLS AND UNIVERSITIES CLUB
- AT DELMONICO'S, MONDAY, MAY 25, 1908, IN HONOR OF
- QUEEN VICTORIA'S BIRTHDAY.
-
- Mr. Clemens told the story of his duel with a rival editor: how he
- practised firing at a barn door and failed to hit it; but a friend
- of his took off the head of a little bird at thirty-five yards and
- attributed the shot to Mark Twain. The duel did not take place. Mr.
- Clemens continued as follows:
-
- IT also happened that I was the means of stopping the duelling in
- Nevada, for a law was passed sending all duellists to jail for two
- years, and the governor, hearing of my marksmanship, said that if he
- got me I should go to prison for the full term. That's why I left
- Nevada, and I have not been there since.
- You do me a high honor, indeed, in selecting me to speak of my
- country in this commemoration of the birthday of that noble lady whose
- life was consecrated to the virtues and the humanities and to the
- promotion of lofty ideals, and was a model upon which many a humbler
- life was formed and made beautiful while she lived, and upon which
- many such lives will still be formed in the generations that are to
- come- life which finds its just image in the star which falls out of
- its place in the sky and out of existence, but whose light still
- streams with unfaded lustre across the abysses of space long after its
- fires have been extinguished at their source.
- As a woman the Queen was all that the most exacting standards
- could require. As a far-reaching and effective beneficent moral
- force she had no peer in her time among either monarchs or
- commoners. As a monarch she was without reproach in her great
- office. We may not venture, perhaps, to say so sweeping a thing as
- this in cold blood about any monarch that preceded her upon either her
- own throne or upon any other. It is a colossal eulogy, but it is
- justified.
- In those qualities of the heart which beget affection in all sorts
- and conditions of men she was rich, surprisingly rich, and for this
- she will still be remembered and revered in the far-off ages when
- the political glories of her reign shall have faded from vital history
- and fallen to a place in that scrap-heap of unverifiable odds and ends
- which we call tradition. Which is to say, in briefer phrase, that
- her name will live always. And with it her character- a fame rare in
- the history of thrones, dominions, principalities, and powers, since
- it will not rest upon harvested selfish and sordid ambitions, but upon
- love, earned and freely vouchsafed. She mended broken hearts where she
- could, but she broke none.
- What she did for us in America in our time of storm and stress we
- shall not forget, and whenever we call it to mind we shall always
- remember the wise and righteous mind that guided her in it and
- sustained and supported her- Prince Albert's. We need not talk any
- idle talk here to-night about either possible or impossible war
- between the two countries; there will be no war while we remain sane
- and the son of Victoria and Albert sits upon the throne. In
- conclusion, I believe I may justly claim to utter the voice of my
- country in saying that we hold him in deep honor, and also in
- cordially wishing him a long life and a happy reign.
- JOAN OF ARC.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE DINNER OF THE SOCIETY OF ILLUSTRATORS,
- GIVEN AT THE ALDINE ASSOCIATION CLUB,
- DECEMBER 22, 1905.
-
- Just before Mr. Clemens made his speech, a young woman attired as
- Joan of Arc, with a page bearing her flag of battle, courtesied
- reverently and tendered Mr. Clemens a laurel wreath on a satin pillow.
- He tried to speak, but his voice failed from excess of emotion. "I
- thank you!" he finally exclaimed, and, pulling himself together, he
- began his speech.
-
- NOW there is an illustration [pointing to the retreating Joan of
- Arc]. That is exactly what I wanted- precisely what I wanted- when I
- was describing to myself Joan of Arc, after studying her history and
- her character for twelve years diligently.
- That was the product- not the conventional Joan of Arc. Wherever you
- find the conventional Joan of Arc in history she is an offence to
- anybody who knows the story of that wonderful girl.
- Why, she was- she was almost supreme in several details. She had a
- marvellous intellect; she had a great heart, had a noble spirit, was
- absolutely pure in her character, her feeling, her language, her
- words, her everything- she was only eighteen years old.
- Now put that heart into such a breast- eighteen years old- and
- give it that masterly intellect which showed in the fate, and
- furnish it with that almost god-like spirit, and what are you going to
- have? The conventional Joan of Arc? Not by any means. That is
- impossible. I cannot comprehend any such thing as that.
- You must have a creature like that young and fair and beautiful girl
- we just saw. And her spirit must look out of the eyes. The figure
- should be- the figure should be in harmony with all that, but, oh,
- what we get in the conventional picture, and it is always the
- conventional picture!
- I hope you will allow me to say that your guild, when you take the
- conventional, you have got it at second-hand. Certainly, if you had
- studied and studied, then you might have something else as a result,
- but when you have the common convention you stick to that.
- You cannot prevail upon the artist to do it; he always gives you a
- Joan of Arc- that lovely creature that started a great career at
- thirteen, but whose greatness arrived when she was eighteen; and
- merely because she was a girl he cannot see the divinity in her, and
- so he paints a peasant, a coarse and lubberly figure- the figure of
- a cotton-bale, and he clothes that in the coarsest raiment of the
- peasant region- just like a fish-woman, her hair cropped short like
- a Russian peasant, and that face of hers, which should be beautiful
- and which should radiate all the glories which are in the spirit and
- in her heart- that expression in that face is always just the fixed
- expression of a ham.
- But now Mr. Beard has intimated a moment ago, and so has Sir
- Purdon-Clarke also, that the artist, the illustrator, does not often
- get the idea of the man whose book he is illustrating. Here is a
- very remarkable instance of the other thing in Mr. Beard, who
- illustrated a book of mine. You may never have heard of it. I will
- tell you about it now- A Yankee in King Arthur's Court.
- Now, Beard got everything that I put into that book and a little
- more besides. Those pictures of Beard's in that book- oh, from the
- first page to the last is one vast sardonic laugh at the trivialities,
- the servilities of our poor human race, and also at the professions
- and the insolence of priest-craft and king-craft- those creatures that
- make slaves of themselves and have not the manliness to shake it
- off. Beard put it all in that book. I meant it to be there. I put a
- lot of it there and Beard put the rest.
- That publisher of mine in Hartford had an eye for the pennies, and
- he saved them. He did not waste any on the illustrations. He had a
- very good artist- Williams- who had never taken a lesson in drawing.
- Everything he did was original. The publisher hired the cheapest
- wood-engraver he could find, and in my early books you can see a trace
- of that. You can see that if Williams had had a chance he would have
- made some very good pictures. He had a good heart and good intentions.
- I had a character in the first book he illustrated- The Innocents
- Abroad. That was a boy seventeen or eighteen years old- Jack Van
- Nostrand- a New York boy, who, to my mind, was a very remarkable
- creature. He and I tried to get Williams to understand that boy, and
- make a picture of Jack that would be worthy of Jack.
- Jack was a most singular combination. He was born and reared in
- New York here. He was as delicate in his feelings, as clean and pure
- and refined in his feelings as any lovely girl that ever was, but
- whenever he expressed a feeling he did it in Bowery slang, and it
- was a most curious combination- that delicacy of his and that apparent
- coarseness. There was no coarseness inside of Jack at all, and Jack,
- in the course of seventeen or eighteen years, had acquired a capital
- of ignorance that was marvellous- ignorance of various things, not
- of all things. For instance, he did not know anything about the Bible.
- He had never been in Sunday-school. Jack got more out of the Holy Land
- than anybody else, because the others knew what they were expecting,
- but it was a land of surprises to him.
- I said in the book that we found him watching a turtle on a log,
- stoning that turtle, and he was stoning that turtle because he had
- read that "The song of the turtle was heard in the land," and this
- turtle wouldn't sing. It sounded absurd, but it was charged on Jack as
- a fact, and as he went along through that country he had a proper foil
- in an old rebel colonel, who was superintendent and head engineer in a
- large Sunday-school in Wheeling, West Virginia. That man was full of
- enthusiasm wherever he went, and would stand and deliver himself of
- speeches, and Jack would listen to those speeches of the colonel and
- wonder.
- Jack had made a trip as a child almost across this continent in
- the first overland stage-coach. That man's name who ran that line of
- stages- well, I declare that name is gone. Well, names will go.
- Halliday- ah, that's the name- Ben Halliday, your uncle [turning
- to Mr. Carnegie]. That was the fellow- Ben Halliday- and Jack was full
- of admiration at the prodigious speed that that line of stages made-
- and it was good speed- one hundred and twenty-five miles a day,
- going day and night, and it was the event of Jack's life, and there at
- the Fords of the Jordan the colonel was inspired to a speech (he was
- always making a speech), so he called us up to him. He called up
- five sinners and three saints. It has been only lately that Mr.
- Carnegie beatified me. And he said: "Here are the Fords of the Jordan-
- a monumental place. At this very point, when Moses brought the
- children of Israel through- he brought the children of Israel from
- Egypt through the desert you see there- he guarded them through that
- desert patiently, patiently during forty years, and brought them to
- this spot safe and sound. There you see- there is the scene of what
- Moses did."
- And Jack said: "Moses who?"
- "Oh," he says, "Jack, you ought not to ask that! Moses, the great
- law-giver! Moses, the great patriot! Moses, the great warrior!
- Moses, the great guide, who, as I tell you, brought these people
- through these three hundred miles of sand in forty years, and landed
- them safe and sound."
- Jack said: "There's nothin' in that three hundred miles in forty
- years. Ben Halliday would have snaked 'em through in thirty-six
- hours."
- Well, I was speaking of Jack's innocence, and it was beautiful. Jack
- was not ignorant on all subjects. That boy was a deep student in the
- history of Anglo-Saxon liberty, and he was a patriot all the way
- through to the marrow. There was a subject that interested him all the
- time. Other subjects were of no concern to Jack, but that quaint,
- inscrutable innocence of his I could not get Williams to put into
- the picture.
- Yes, Williams wanted to do it. He said: "I will make him as innocent
- as a virgin." He thought a moment, and then said, "I will make him
- as innocent as an unborn virgin," which covered the ground.
- I was reminded of Jack because I came across a letter to-day which
- is over thirty years old that Jack wrote. Jack was doomed to
- consumption. He was very long and slim, poor creature, and in a year
- or two after he got back from that excursion to the Holy Land he
- went on a ride on horseback through Colorado, and he did not last
- but a year or two.
- He wrote this letter, not to me, but to a friend of mine, and he
- said: "I have ridden horseback"- this was three years after- "I have
- ridden horseback four hundred miles through a desert country where you
- never see anything but cattle now and then, and now and then a
- cattle station- ten miles apart, twenty miles apart. Now you tell
- Clemens that in all that stretch of four hundred miles I have seen
- only two books- the Bible and Innocents Abroad. Tell Clemens the Bible
- was in a very good condition."
- I say that he had studied, and he had, the real Saxon liberty, the
- acquirement of our liberty, and Jack used to repeat some verses- I
- don't know where they came from, but I thought of them to-day when I
- saw that letter- that that boy could have been talking of himself in
- those quoted lines from that unknown poet:
-
- "For he had sat at Sidney's feet
- And walked with him in plain apart,
- And through the centuries heard the beat
- Of Freedom's march through Cromwell's heart."
-
- And he was that kind of a boy. He should have lived, and yet he
- should not have lived, because he died at that early age- he
- couldn't have been more than twenty- he had seen all there was to
- see in the world that was worth the trouble of living in it; he had
- seen all of this world that is valuable; he had seen all of this world
- that was illusion, and illusion is the only valuable thing in it. He
- had arrived at that point where presently the illusions would cease
- and he would have entered upon the realities of life, and God help the
- man that has arrived at that point.
- ACCIDENT INSURANCE- ETC.
-
- DELIVERED IN HARTFORD, AT A DINNER TO
- CORNELIUS WALFORD, OF LONDON.
-
- GENTLEMEN,- I am glad, indeed, to assist in welcoming the
- distinguished guest of this occasion to a city whose fame as an
- insurance centre has extended to all lands, and given us the name of
- being a quadruple band of brothers working sweetly hand in hand- the
- Colt's arms company making the destruction of our race easy and
- convenient, our life-insurance citizens paying for the victims when
- they pass away, Mr. Batterson perpetuating their memory with his
- stately monuments, and our fire-insurance comrades taking care of
- their hereafter. I am glad to assist in welcoming our guest- first,
- because he is an Englishman, and I owe a heavy debt of hospitality
- to certain of his fellow-countrymen; and secondly, because he is in
- sympathy with insurance, and has been the means of making many other
- men cast their sympathies in the same direction.
- Certainly there is no nobler field for human effort than the
- insurance line of business- especially accident insurance. Ever
- since I have been a director in an accident-insurance company I have
- felt that I am a better man. Life has seemed more precious.
- Accidents have assumed a kindlier aspect. Distressing special
- providences have lost half their horror. I look upon a cripple now
- with affectionate interest- as an advertisement. I do not seem to care
- for poetry any more. I do not care for politics even agriculture
- does not excite me. But to me now there is a charm about a railway
- collision that is unspeakable.
- There is nothing more beneficent than accident insurance. I have
- seen an entire family lifted out of poverty and into affluence by
- the simple boon of a broken leg. I have had people come to me on
- crutches, with tears in their eyes, to bless this beneficent
- institution. In all my experience of life, I have seen nothing so
- seraphic as the look that comes into a freshly mutilated man's face
- when he feels in his vest pocket with his remaining hand and finds his
- accident ticket all right. And I have seen nothing so sad as the
- look that came into another splintered customer's face when he found
- he couldn't collect on a wooden leg.
- I will remark here, by way of advertisement, that that noble charity
- which we have named the HARTFORD ACCIDENT INSURANCE COMPANY* is an
- institution which is peculiarly to be depended upon. A man is bound to
- prosper who gives it his custom. No man can take out a policy in it
- and not get crippled before the year is out. Now there was one
- indigent man who had been disappointed so often with other companies
- that he had grown disheartened, his appetite left him, he ceased to
- smile- said life was but a weariness. Three weeks ago I got him to
- insure with us, and now he is the brightest, happiest spirit in this
- land- has a good steady income and a stylish suit of new bandages
- every day, and travels around on a shutter.
-
- * The speaker was a director of the company named.
-
- I will say, in conclusion, that my share of the welcome to our guest
- is none the less hearty because I talk so much nonsense, and I know
- that I can say the same for the rest of the speakers.
- OSTEOPATHY
- OSTEOPATHY.
-
- On February 27, 1901, Mr. Clemens appeared before the Assembly
- Committee in Albany, New York, in favor of the Seymour bill legalizing
- the practice of osteopathy.
-
- MR. CHAIRMAN AND GENTLEMEN,- Dr. Van Fleet is the gentleman who gave
- me the character. I have heard my character discussed a thousand times
- before you were born, sir, and shown the iniquities in it, and you did
- not get more than half of them.
- I was touched and distressed when they brought that part of a
- child in here, and proved that you cannot take a child to pieces in
- that way. What remarkable names those diseases have! It makes me
- envious of the man that has them all. I have had many diseases, and am
- thankful for all I have had.
- One of the gentlemen spoke of the knowledge of something else
- found in Sweden, a treatment which I took. It is, I suppose, a kindred
- thing. There is apparently no great difference between them. I was a
- year and a half in London and Sweden, in the hands of that grand old
- man, Mr. Kildren.
- I cannot call him a doctor, for he has not the authority to give a
- certificate if a patient should die, but fortunately they don't.
- The State stands as a mighty Gibraltar clothed with power. It stands
- between me and my body, and tells me what kind of a doctor I must
- employ. When my soul is sick unlimited spiritual liberty is given me
- by the State. Now then, it doesn't seem logical that the State shall
- depart from this great policy, the health of the soul, and change
- about and take the other position in the matter of smaller
- consequence- the health of the body.
- The Bell bill limitations would drive the osteopaths out of the
- State. Oh, dear me! when you drive somebody out of the State you
- create the same condition as prevailed in the Garden of Eden. You want
- the thing that you can't have. I didn't care much about the
- osteopaths, but as soon as I found they were going to drive them out I
- got in a state of uneasiness, and I can't sleep nights now.
- I know how Adam felt in the Garden of Eden about the prohibited
- apple. Adam didn't want the apple till he found out he couldn't have
- it, just as he would have wanted osteopathy if he couldn't have it.
- Whose property is my body? Probably mine. I so regard it. If I
- experiment with it, who must be answerable? I, not the State. If I
- choose injudiciously, does the State die? Oh no.
- I was the subject of my mother's experiment. She was wise. She
- made experiments cautiously. She didn't pick out just any child in the
- flock. No, she chose judiciously. She chose one she could spare, and
- she couldn't spare the others. I was the choice child of the flock, so
- I had to take all of the experiments.
- In 1844 Kneipp filled the world with the wonder of the water cure.
- Mother wanted to try it, but on sober second thought she put me
- through. A bucket of ice-water was poured over to see the effect. Then
- I was rubbed down with flannels, a sheet was dipped in the water,
- and I was put to bed. I perspired so much that mother put a
- life-preserver to bed with me.
- But this had nothing but a spiritual effect on me, and I didn't care
- for that. When they took off the sheet it was yellow from the output
- of my conscience, the exudation of sin. It purified me spiritually,
- and it remains until this day.
- I have experimented with osteopathy and allopathy. I took a chance
- at the latter for old times' sake, for, three times, when a boy,
- mother's new methods got me so near death's door she had to call in
- the family physician to pull me out.
- The physicians think they are moved by regard for the best interests
- of the public. Isn't there a little touch of self-interest back of
- it all? It seems to me there is, and I don't claim to have all the
- virtues- only nine or ten of them.
- I was born in the "Banner State," and by "Banner State" I mean
- Missouri. Osteopathy was born in the same State, and both of us are
- getting along reasonably well. At a time during my younger days my
- attention was attracted to a picture of a house which bore the
- inscription, "Christ Disputing with the Doctors."
- I could attach no other meaning to it than that Christ was
- actually quarrelling with the doctors. So I asked an old slave, who
- was a sort of a herb doctor in a small way- unlicensed, of course-
- what the meaning of the picture was. "What has he done?" I asked.
- And the colored man replied:
- "Humph, he ain't got no license."
- WATER-SUPPLY.
-
- Mr. Clemens visited Albany on February 27 and 28, 1901. The
- privileges of the floor were granted to him, and he was asked to
- make a short address to the Senate.
-
- MR. PRESIDENT AND GENTLEMEN,- I do not know how to thank you
- sufficiently for this high honor which you are conferring upon me. I
- have for the second time now enjoyed this kind of prodigal
- hospitality- in the other House yesterday, to-day in this one. I am
- a modest man, and diffident about appearing before legislative bodies,
- and yet utterly and entirely appreciative of a courtesy like this when
- it is extended to me, and I thank you very much for it.
- If I had the privilege, which unfortunately I have not got, of
- suggesting things to the legislators in my individual capacity, I
- would so enjoy the opportunity that I would not charge anything for it
- at all. I would do that without a salary. I would give them the
- benefit of my wisdom and experience in legislative bodies, and if I
- could have had the privilege for a few minutes of giving advice to the
- other House I should have liked to, but of course I could not
- undertake it, as they did not ask me to do it- but if they had only
- asked me!
- Now that the House is considering a measure which is to furnish a
- water-supply to the city of New York, why, permit me to say I live
- in New York myself. I know all about its ways, its desires, and its
- residents, and- if I had the privilege- I should have urged them not
- to weary themselves over a measure like that to furnish water to the
- city of New York, for we never drink it.
- But I will not venture to advise this body, as I only venture to
- advise bodies who are not present.
- MISTAKEN IDENTITY.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE ANNUAL "LADIES' DAY,"
- PAPYRUS CLUB, BOSTON.
-
- LADIES AND GENTLEMEN,- I am perfectly astonished-
- a-s-t-o-n-i-s-h-e-d- ladies and gentlemen- astonished at the way
- history repeats itself. I find myself situated at this moment
- exactly and precisely as I was once before, years ago, to a jot, to
- a tittle- to a very hair. There isn't a shade of difference. It is the
- most astonishing coincidence that ever- but wait. I will tell you
- the former instance, and then you will see it for yourself. Years
- ago I arrived one day at Salamanca, New York, eastward bound; must
- change cars there and take the sleeper train. There were crowds of
- people there, and they were swarming into the long sleeper train and
- packing it full, and it was a perfect purgatory of dust and
- confusion and gritting of teeth and soft, sweet, and low profanity.
- I asked the young man in the ticket-office if I could have a
- sleeping-section, and he answered "No," with a snarl that shrivelled
- me up like burned leather. I went off, smarting under this insult to
- my dignity, and asked another local official, supplicatingly, if I
- couldn't have some poor little corner somewhere in a sleeping-car; but
- he cut me short with a venomous "No, you can't; every corner is
- full. Now, don't bother me any more"; and he turned his back and
- walked off. My dignity was in a state now which cannot be described. I
- was so ruffled that- well, I said to my companion, "If these people
- knew who I am they-" But my companion cut me short there- "Don't
- talk such folly," he said; "if they did know who you are, do you
- suppose it would help your high-mightiness to a vacancy in a train
- which has no vacancies in it?"
- This did not improve my condition any to speak of, but just then I
- observed that the colored porter of a sleeping-car had his eye on
- me. I saw his dark countenance light up. He whispered to the uniformed
- conductor, punctuating with nods and jerks toward me, and
- straightway this conductor came forward, oozing politeness from
- every pore.
- "Can I be of any service to you?" he asked. "Will you have a place
- in the sleeper?"
- "Yes," I said, "and much oblige me, too. Give me anything-
- anything will answer."
- "We have nothing left but the big family stateroom," he continued,
- "with two berths and a couple of arm-chairs in it, but it is
- entirely at your disposal. Here, Tom, take these satchels aboard!"
- Then he touched his hat and we and the colored Tom moved along. I
- was bursting to drop just one little remark to my companion, but I
- held in and waited. Tom made us comfortable in that sumptuous great
- apartment, and then said, with many bows and a perfect affluence of
- smiles:
- "Now, is dey anything you want, sah? Case you kin have jes' anything
- you wants. It don't make no difference what it is."
- "Can I have some hot water and a tumbler at nine to-night- blazing
- hot?" I asked. "You know about the right temperature for a hot
- Scotch punch?"
- "Yes, sah, dat you kin; you kin pen on it; I'll get it myself."
- "Good! Now, that lamp is hung too high. Can I have a big coach
- candle fixed up just at the head of my bed, so that I can read
- comfortably?"
- "Yes, sah, you kin; I'll fix her up myself, an' I'll fix her so
- she'll burn all night. Yes, sah; an' you can jes' call for anything
- you want, and dish yer whole railroad 'll be turned wrong end up an'
- inside out for to get it for you. Dat's so." And he disappeared.
- Well, I tilted my head back, hooked my thumbs in my armholes, smiled
- a smile on my companion, and said, gently:
- "Well, what do you say now?"
- My companion was not in the humor to respond, and didn't. The next
- moment that smiling black face was thrust in at the crack of the door,
- and this speech followed:
- "Laws bless you, sah, I knowed you in a minute. I told de
- conductah so. Laws! I knowed you de minute I sot eyes on you."
- "Is that so, my boy?" (Handing him a quadruple fee.) "Who am I?"
- "Jenuel McClellan," and he disappeared again.
- My companion said, vinegarishly, "Well, well! what do you say
- now?" Right there comes in the marvellous coincidence I mentioned a
- while ago- viz., I was speechless, and that is my condition now.
- Perceive it?
- CATS AND CANDY.
-
- The following address was delivered at a social meeting of
- literary men in New York in 1874:
-
- WHEN I was fourteen I was living with my parents, who were very
- poor- and correspondently honest. We had a youth living with us by the
- name of Jim Wolfe. He was an excellent fellow, seventeen years old,
- and very diffident. He and I slept together- virtuously; and one
- bitter winter's night a cousin Mary- she's married now and gone-
- gave what they call a candy-pulling in those days in the West, and
- they took the saucers of hot candy outside of the house into the snow,
- under a sort of old bower that came from the eaves- it was a sort of
- an ell then, all covered with vines- to cool this hot candy in the
- snow, and they were all sitting there. In the mean time we were gone
- to bed. We were not invited to attend this party; we were too young.
- The young ladies and gentlemen were assembled there, and Jim and I
- were in bed. There was about four inches of snow on the roof of this
- ell, and our windows looked out on it, and it was frozen hard. A
- couple of tom-cats- it is possible one might have been of the opposite
- sex- were assembled on the chimney in the middle of this ell, and they
- were growling at a fearful rate, and switching their tails about and
- going on, and we couldn't sleep at all.
- Finally Jim said, "For two cents I'd go out and snake them cats
- off that chimney." So I said, "Of course you would." He said, "Well, I
- would; I have a mighty good notion to do it." Says I, "Of course you
- have; certainly you have, you have a great notion to do it." I hoped
- he might try it, but I was afraid he wouldn't.
- Finally I did get his ambition up, and he raised the window and
- climbed out on the icy roof, with nothing on but his socks and a
- very short shirt. He went climbing along on all fours on the roof
- toward the chimney where the cats were. In the mean time these young
- ladies and gentlemen were enjoying themselves down under the eaves,
- and when Jim got almost to that chimney he made a pass at the cats,
- and his heels flew up and he shot down and crashed through those
- vines, and lit in the midst of the ladies and gentlemen, and sat
- down in those hot saucers of candy.
- There was a stampede, of course, and he came up-stairs dropping
- pieces of chinaware and candy all the way up, and when he got up
- there- now anybody in the world would have gone into profanity or
- something calculated to relieve the mind, but he didn't; he scraped
- the candy off his legs, nursed his blisters a little, and said, "I
- could have ketched them cats if I had had on a good ready."
- OBITUARY POETRY.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE ACTORS' FUND FAIR,
- PHILADELPHIA, in 1895.
-
- LADIES AND GENTLEMEN,- The- er- this- er- welcome occasion gives
- me an- er- opportunity to make an- er- explanation that I have long
- desired to deliver myself of. I rise to the highest honors before a
- Philadelphia audience. In the course of my checkered career I have, on
- divers occasions, been charged- er- maliciously with a more or less
- serious offence. It is in reply to one of the more- er- important of
- these that I wish to speak. More than once I have been accused of
- writing obituary poetry in the Philadelphia Ledger.
- I wish right here to deny that dreadful assertion. I will admit that
- once, when a compositor in the Ledger establishment, I did set up some
- of that poetry, but for a worse offence than that no indictment can be
- found against me. I did not write that poetry- at least, not all of
- it.
- CIGARS AND TOBACCO.
-
- MY friends for some years now have remarked that I am an
- inveterate consumer of tobacco. That is true, but my habits with
- regard to tobacco have changed. I have no doubt that you will say,
- when I have explained to you what my present purpose is, that my taste
- has deteriorated, but I do not so regard it.
- Whenever I held a smoking-party at my house, I found that my
- guests had always just taken the pledge.
- Let me tell you briefly the history of my personal relation to
- tobacco. It began, I think, when I was a lad, and took the form of a
- quid, which I became expert in tucking under my tongue. Afterward I
- learned the delights of the pipe, and I suppose there was no other
- youngster of my age who could more deftly cut plug tobacco so as to
- make it available for pipe-smoking.
- Well, time ran on, and there came a time when I was able to
- gratify one of my youthful ambitions- I could buy the choicest
- Havana cigars without seriously interfering with my income. I smoked a
- good many, changing off from the Havana cigars to the pipe in the
- course of a day's smoking.
- At last it occurred to me that something was lacking in the Havana
- cigar. It did not quite fulfil my youthful anticipations. I
- experimented. I bought what was called a seed-leaf cigar with a
- Connecticut wrapper. After a while I became satiated of these, and I
- searched for something else. The Pittsburg stogy was recommended to
- me. It certainly had the merit of cheapness, if that be a merit in
- tobacco, and I experimented with the stogy.
- Then, once more, I changed off, so that I might acquire the
- subtler flavor of the Wheeling toby. Now that palled, and I looked
- around New York in the hope of finding cigars which would seem to most
- people vile, but which, I am sure, would be ambrosial to me. I
- couldn't find any. They put into my hands some of those little
- things that cost ten cents a box, but they are a delusion.
- I said to a friend, "I want to know if you can direct me to an
- honest tobacco merchant who will tell me what is the worst cigar in
- the New York market, excepting those made for Chinese consumption- I
- want real tobacco. If you will do this and I find the man is as good
- as his word, I will guarantee him a regular market for a fair amount
- of his cigars."
- We found a tobacco dealer who would tell the truth- who, if a
- cigar was bad, would boldly say so. He produced what he called the
- very worst cigars he had ever had in his shop. He let me experiment
- with one then and there. The test was satisfactory.
- This was, after all, the real thing. I negotiated for a box of
- them and took them away with me, so that I might be sure of having
- them handy when I want them.
- I discovered that the "worst cigars," so called, are the best for me
- after all.
- BILLIARDS
- BILLIARDS.
-
- Mr. Clemens attended a billiard tourney on the evening of April
- 24, 1906, and was called on to tell a story.
-
- THE game of billiards has destroyed my naturally sweet
- disposition. Once, when I was an underpaid reporter in Virginia
- City, whenever I wished to play billiards I went out to look for an
- easy mark. One day a stranger came to town and opened a billiard
- parlor. I looked him over casually. When he proposed a game, I
- answered, "All right."
- "Just knock the balls around a little so that I can get your
- gait," he said; and when I had done so, he remarked: "I will be
- perfectly fair with you. I'll play you left-handed." I felt hurt,
- for he was cross-eyed, freckled, and had red hair, and I determined to
- teach him a lesson. He won first shot, ran out, took my half-dollar,
- and all I got was the opportunity to chalk my cue.
- "If you can play like that with your left hand," I said, "I'd like
- to see you play with your right."
- "I can't, he said. "I'm left-handed."
- THE UNION RIGHT OR WRONG?
-
- REMINISCENCES OF NEVADA.
-
- I CAN assure you, ladies and gentlemen, that Nevada had lively
- newspapers in those days.
- My great competitor among the reporters was Boggs, of the Union,
- an excellent reporter.
- Once in three or four months he would get a little intoxicated; but,
- as a general thing, he was a wary and cautious drinker, although
- always ready to damp himself a little with the enemy.
- He had the advantage of me in one thing: he could get the monthly
- public-school report and I could not, because the principal hated my
- sheet- the Enterprise.
- One snowy night, when the report was due, I started out, sadly
- wondering how I was to get it.
- Presently, a few steps up the almost deserted street, I stumbled
- on Boggs, and asked him where he was going.
- "After the school report."
- "I'll go along with you."
- "No, sir. I'll excuse you."
- "Have it your own way."
- A saloon-keeper's boy passed by with a steaming pitcher of hot
- punch, and Boggs snuffed the fragrance gratefully.
- He gazed fondly after the boy, and saw him start up the Enterprise
- stairs.
- I said:
- "I wish you could help me get that school business, but since you
- can't, I must run up to the Union office and see if I can get a
- proof of it after it's set up, though I don't begin to suppose I
- can. Good night."
- "Hold on a minute. I don't mind getting the report and sitting
- around with the boys a little while you copy it, if you're willing
- to drop down to the principal's with me."
- "Now you talk like a human being. Come along."
- We ploughed a couple of blocks through the snow, got the report- a
- short document- and soon copied it in our office.
- Meantime, Boggs helped himself to the punch.
- I gave the manuscript back to him, and we started back to get an
- inquest.
- At four o'clock in the morning, when we had gone to press and were
- having a relaxing concert as usual (for some of the printers were good
- singers and others good performers on the guitar and on that
- atrocity the accordion), the proprietor of the Union strode in and
- asked if anybody had heard anything of Boggs or the school report.
- We stated the case, and all turned out to help hunt for the
- delinquent.
- We found him standing on a table in a saloon, with an old tin
- lantern in one hand and the school report in the other, haranguing a
- gang of "corned" miners on the iniquity of squandering the public
- money on education "when hundreds and hundreds of honest, hard-working
- men were literally starving for whiskey."
- He had been assisting in a regal spree with those parties for hours.
- We dragged him away, and put him into bed.
- Of course there was no school report in the Union, and Boggs held me
- accountable, though I was innocent of any intention or desire to
- compass its absence from that paper, and was as sorry as any one
- that the misfortune had occurred. But we were perfectly friendly.
- The day the next school report was due the proprietor of the
- Tennessee Mine furnished us a buggy, and asked us to go down and write
- something about the property- a very common request, and one always
- gladly acceded to when people furnished buggies, for we were as fond
- of pleasure excursions as other people.
- The "mine" was a hole in the ground ninety feet deep, and no way
- of getting down into it but by holding on to a rope and being
- lowered with a windlass.
- The workmen had just gone off somewhere to dinner.
- I was not strong enough to lower Boggs's bulk, so I took an
- unlighted candle in my teeth, made a loop for my foot in the end of
- the rope, implored Boggs not to go to sleep or let the windlass get
- the start of him, and then swung out over the shaft.
- I reached the bottom muddy and bruised about the elbows, but safe.
- I lit the candle, made an examination of the rock, selected some
- specimens, and shouted to Boggs to hoist away.
- No answer.
- Presently a head appeared in the circle of daylight away aloft,
- and a voice came down:
- "Are you all set?"
- "All set- hoist away!"
- "Are you comfortable?"
- "Perfectly."
- "Could you wait a little?"
- "Oh, certainly- no particular hurry."
- "Well- good-bye."
- "Why, where are you going?"
- "After the school report!"
- And he did.
- I stayed down there an hour, and surprised the workmen when they
- hauled up and found a man on the rope instead of a bucket of rock.
- I walked home, too- five miles- up-hill.
- We had no school report next morning- but the Union had.
- AN IDEAL FRENCH ADDRESS.
-
- EXTRACT FROM "PARIS NOTES," IN "TOM SAWYER
- ABROAD," ETC.
-
- I AM told that a French sermon is like a French speech- it never
- names an historical event, but only the date of it; if you are not
- up in dates, you get left. A French speech is something like this:
- "Comrades, citizens, brothers, noble parts of the only sublime and
- perfect nation, let us not forget that the 21st January cast off our
- chains; that the 10th August relieved us of the shameful presence of
- foreign spies; that the 5th September was its own justification before
- heaven and humanity; that the 18th Brumaire contained the seeds of its
- own punishment; that the 14th July was the mighty voice of liberty
- proclaiming the resurrection, the new day, and inviting the
- oppressed peoples of the earth to look upon the divine face of
- France and live; and let us here record our everlasting curse
- against the man of the 2d December, and declare in thunder tones,
- the native tones of France, that but for him there had been no 17th
- March in history, no 12th October, no 19th January, no 22d April, no
- 16th November, no 30th September, no 2d July, no 14th February, no
- 29th June, no 15th August, no 31st May- that but for him, France,
- the pure, the grand, the peerless, had had a serene and vacant almanac
- to-day."
- I have heard of one French sermon which closed in this odd yet
- eloquent way:
- "My hearers, we have sad cause to remember the man of the 13th
- January. The results of the vast crime of the 13th January have been
- in just proportion to the magnitude of the act itself. But for it
- there had been no 30th November- sorrowful spectacle! The grisly
- deed of the 16th June had not been done but for it, nor had the man of
- the 16th June known existence; to it alone the 3d September was due,
- also the fatal 12th October. Shall we, then, be grateful for the
- 13th January, with its freight of death for you and me and all that
- breathe? Yes, my friends, for it gave us also that which had never
- come but for it, and it alone- the blessed 25th December."
- It may be well enough to explain. The man of the 13th January is
- Adam; the crime of that date was the eating of the apple; the
- sorrowful spectacle of the 30th November was the expulsion from
- Eden; the grisly deed of the 16th June was the murder of Abel; the act
- of the 3d September was the beginning of the journey to the land of
- Nod; the 12th day of October, the last mountaintops disappeared
- under the flood. When you go to church in France, you want to take
- your almanac with you- annotated.
- STATISTICS
- STATISTICS.
-
- EXTRACT FROM "THE HISTORY OF THE SAVAGE CLUB."
-
- During that period of gloom when domestic bereavement had forced Mr.
- Clemens and his dear ones to secure the privacy they craved until
- their wounds should heal, his address was known to only a very few
- of his closest friends. One old friend in New York, after vain efforts
- to get his address, wrote him a letter addressed as follows:
-
- MARK TWAIN,
- God Knows Where,
- Try London.
-
- The letter found him, and Mr. Clemens replied to the letter
- expressing himself surprised and complimented that the person who
- was credited with knowing his whereabouts should take so much interest
- in him, adding: "Had the letter been addressed to the care of the
- 'other party,' I would naturally have expected to receive it without
- delay."
- His correspondent tried again, and addressed the second letter:
-
- MARK TWAIN,
- The Devil Knows Where,
- Try London.
-
- This found him also no less promptly.
- On June 9, 1899, he consented to visit the Savage Club, London, on
- condition that there was to be no publicity and no speech was to be
- expected from him. The toastmaster, in proposing the health of their
- guest, said that as a Scotchman, and therefore as a born expert, he
- thought Mark Twain had little or no claim to the title of humorist.
- Mr. Clemens had tried to be funny but had failed, and his true role in
- life was statistics; that he was a master of statistics, and loved
- them for their own sake, and it would be the easiest task he ever
- undertook if he would try to count all the real jokes he had ever
- made. While the toastmaster was speaking, the members saw Mr.
- Clemens's eyes begin to sparkle and his cheeks to flush. He jumped up,
- and made a characteristic speech.
-
- PERHAPS I am not a. humorist, but I am a first-class fool- a
- simpleton; for up to this moment I have believed Chairman MacAlister
- to be a decent person whom I could allow to mix up with my friends and
- relatives. The exhibition he has just made of himself reveals him to
- be a scoundrel and a knave of the deepest dye. I have been cruelly
- deceived, and it serves me right for trusting a Scotchman. Yes, I do
- understand figures, and I can count. I have counted the words in
- MacAlister's drivel (I certainly cannot call it a speech), and there
- were exactly three thousand four hundred and thirty-nine. I also
- carefully counted the lies- there were exactly three thousand four
- hundred and thirty-nine. Therefore, I leave MacAlister to his fate.
- I was sorry to have my name mentioned as one of the great authors,
- because they have a sad habit of dying off. Chaucer is dead, Spencer
- is dead, so is Milton, so is Shakespeare, and I am not feeling very
- well myself.
- GALVESTON ORPHAN BAZAAR.
-
- ADDRESS AT A FAIR HELD AT THE WALDORF-ASTORIA,
- NEW YORK, IN OCTOBER, 1900, IN AID OF
- THE ORPHANS AT GALVESTON.
-
- I EXPECTED that the Governor of Texas would occupy this place
- first and would speak to you, and in the course of his remarks would
- drop a text for me to talk from; but with the proverbial obstinacy
- that is proverbial with governors, they go back on their duties, and
- he has not come here, and has not furnished me with a text, and I am
- here without a text. I have no text except what you furnish me with
- your handsome faces, and- but I won't continue that, for I could go on
- forever about attractive faces, beautiful dresses, and other things.
- But, after all, compliments should be in order in a place like this.
- I have been in New York two or three days, and have been in a
- condition of strict diligence night and day, the object of this
- diligence being to regulate the moral and political situation on
- this planet- put it on a sound basis- and when you are regulating
- the conditions of a planet it requires a great deal of talk in a great
- many kinds of ways, and when you have talked a lot the emptier you
- get, and get also in a position of corking. When I am situated like
- that, with nothing to say, I feel as though I were a sort of fraud;
- I seem to be playing a part, and please consider I am playing a part
- for want of something better, and this is not unfamiliar to me; I have
- often done this before.
- When I was here about eight years ago I was coming up in a car of
- the elevated road. Very few people were in that car, and on one end of
- it there was no one, except on the opposite seat, where sat a man
- about fifty years old, with a most winning face and an elegant eye-
- a beautiful eye; and I took him from his dress to be a master
- mechanic, a man who had a vocation. He had with him a very fine little
- child of about four or five years. I was watching the affection
- which existed between those two. I judged he was the grandfather,
- perhaps. It was really a pretty child, and I was admiring her, and
- as soon as he saw I was admiring her he began to notice me.
- I could see his admiration of me in his eye, and I did what
- everybody else would do- admired the child four times as much, knowing
- I would get four times as much of his admiration. Things went on
- very pleasantly. I was making my way into his heart.
- By-and-by, when he almost reached the station where he was to get
- off, he got up, crossed over, and he said: "Now I am going to say
- something to you which I hope you will regard as a compliment." And
- then he went on to say: "I have never seen Mark Twain, but I have seen
- a portrait of him, and any friend of mine will tell you that when I
- have once seen a portrait of a man I place it in my eye and store it
- away in my memory, and I can tell you now that you look enough like
- Mark Twain to be his brother. Now," he said, "I hope you take this
- as a compliment. Yes, you are a very good imitation; but when I come
- to look closer, you are probably not that man."
- I said: "I will be frank with you. In my desire to look like that
- excellent character I have dressed for the character; I have been
- playing a part."
- He said: "That is all right, that is all right; you look very well
- on the outside, but when it comes to the inside you are not in it with
- the original."
- So when I come to a place like this with nothing valuable to say I
- always play a part. But I will say before I sit down that when it
- comes to saying anything here I will express myself in this way: I
- am heartily in sympathy with you in your efforts to help those who
- were sufferers in this calamity, and in your desire to help those
- who were rendered homeless, and in saying this I wish to impress on
- you the fact that I am not playing a part.
- SAN FRANCISCO EARTHQUAKE.
-
- After the address at the Robert Fulton Fund meeting, June 19,
- 1906, Mr. Clemens talked to the assembled reporters about the San
- Francisco earthquake.
-
- I HAVEN'T been there since 1868, and that great city of San
- Francisco has grown up since my day. When I was there she had one
- hundred and eighteen thousand people, and of this number eighteen
- thousand were Chinese. I was a reporter on the Virginia City
- Enterprise in Nevada in 1862, and stayed there, I think, about two
- years, when I went to San Francisco and got a job as a reporter on The
- Call. I was there three or four years.
- I remember one day I was walking down Third Street in San Francisco.
- It was a sleepy, dull Sunday afternoon, and no one was stirring.
- Suddenly as I looked up the street about three hundred yards the whole
- side of a house fell out. The street was full of bricks and mortar. At
- the same time I was knocked against the side of a house, and stood
- there stunned for a moment.
- I thought it was an earthquake. Nobody else had heard anything about
- it and no one said earthquake to me afterward, but I saw it and I
- wrote it. Nobody else wrote it, and the house I saw go into the street
- was the only house in the city that felt it. I've always wondered if
- it wasn't a little performance gotten up for my especial entertainment
- by the nether regions.
- CHARITY AND ACTORS.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE ACTORS' FUND FAIR IN THE METROPOLITAN
- OPERA HOUSE, NEW YORK, MAY 6, 1907.
-
- Mr. Clemens, in his white suit, formally declared the fair open. Mr.
- Daniel Frohman, in introducing Mr. Clemens, said:
- "We intend to make this a banner week in the history of the Fund,
- which takes an interest in every one on the stage, be he actor,
- singer, dancer, or workman. We have spent more than $40,000 during the
- past year. Charity covers a multitude of sins, but it also reveals a
- multitude of virtues. At the opening of the former fair we had the
- assistance of Edwin Booth and Joseph Jefferson. In their place we have
- to-day that American institution and apostle of wide humanity- Mark
- Twain."
-
- AS Mr. Frohman has said, charity reveals a multitude of virtues.
- This is true, and it is to be proved here before the week is over. Mr.
- Frohman has told you something of the object and something of the
- character of the work. He told me he would do this- and he has kept
- his word! I had expected to hear of it through the newspapers. I
- wouldn't trust anything between Frohman and the newspapers- except
- when it's a case of charity!
- You should all remember that the actor has been your benefactor many
- and many a year. When you have been weary and downcast he has lifted
- your heart out of gloom and given you a fresh impulse. You are all
- under obligation to him. This is your opportunity to be his
- benefactor- to help provide for him in his old age and when he suffers
- from infirmities.
- At this fair no one is to be persecuted to buy. If you offer a
- twenty-dollar bill in payment for a purchase of $1 you will receive
- $19 in change. There is to be no robbery here. There is to be no creed
- here- no religion except charity. We want to raise $250,000- and
- that is a great task to attempt.
- The President has set the fair in motion by pressing the button in
- Washington. Now your good wishes are to be transmuted into cash.
- By virtue of the authority in me vested I declare the fair open. I
- call the ball game. Let the transmuting begin!
- RUSSIAN REPUBLIC.
-
- The American auxiliary movement to aid the cause of freedom in
- Russia was launched on the evening of April 11, 1906, at the Club A
- house, 3 Fifth Avenue, with Mr. Clemens and Maxim Gorky as the
- principal spokesmen. Mr. Clemens made an introductory address,
- presenting Mr. Gorky.
-
- IF we can build a Russian republic to give to the persecuted
- people of the Tsar's domain the same measure of freedom that we enjoy,
- let us go ahead and do it. We need not discuss the methods by which
- that purpose is to be attained. Let us hope that fighting will be
- postponed or averted for a while, but if it must come-
- I am most emphatically in sympathy with the movement, now on foot in
- Russia, to make that country free. I am certain that it will be
- successful, as it deserves to be. Any such movement should have and
- deserves our earnest and unanimous co-operation, and such a petition
- for funds as has been explained by Mr. Hunter, with its just and
- powerful meaning, should have the utmost support of each and every one
- of us. Anybody whose ancestors were in this country when we were
- trying to free ourselves from oppression, must sympathize with those
- who now are trying to do the same thing in Russia.
- The parallel I have just drawn only goes to show that it makes no
- difference whether the oppression is bitter or not; men with red, warm
- blood in their veins will not endure it, but will seek to cast it off.
- If we keep our hearts in this matter Russia will be free.
- RUSSIAN SUFFERERS.
-
- On December 18, 1905, an entertainment was given at the Casino for
- the benefit of the Russian sufferers. After the performance Mr.
- Clemens spoke.
-
- LADIES AND GENTLEMEN,- It seems a sort of cruelty to inflict upon an
- audience like this our rude English tongue, after we have heard that
- divine speech flowing in that lucid Gallic tongue.
- It has always been a marvel to me- that French language; it has
- always been a puzzle to me. How beautiful that language is. How
- expressive it seems to be. How full of grace it is.
- And when it comes from lips like those, how eloquent and how
- liquid it is. And, oh, I am always deceived- I always think I am going
- to understand it.
- Oh, it is such a delight to me, such a delight to me, to meet Madame
- Bernhardt, and laugh hand to hand and heart to heart with her.
- I have seen her play, as we all have, and oh, that is divine; but
- I have always wanted to know Madame Bernhardt herself- her fiery self.
- I have wanted to know that beautiful character.
- Why, she is the youngest person I ever saw, except myself- for I
- always feel young when I come in the presence of young people.
- I have a pleasant recollection of an incident so many years ago-
- when Madame Bernhardt came to Hartford, where I lived, and she was
- going to play and the tickets were three dollars, and there were two
- lovely women- a widow and her daughter- neighbors of ours, highly
- cultivated ladies they were; their tastes were fine and elevated,
- but they were very poor, and they said: "Well, we must not spend six
- dollars on a pleasure of the mind, a pleasure of the intellect; we
- must spend it, if it must go at all, to furnish to somebody bread to
- eat."
- And so they sorrowed over the fact that they had to give up that
- great pleasure of seeing Madame Bernhardt, but there were two
- neighbors equally highly cultivated and who could not afford bread,
- and those good-hearted Joneses sent that six dollars- deprived
- themselves of it- and sent it to those poor Smiths to buy bread
- with. And those Smiths took it and bought tickets with it to see
- Madame Bernhardt.
- Oh yes, some people have tastes and intelligence also.
- Now, I was going to make a speech- I supposed I was, but I am not.
- It is late, late; and so I am going to tell a story; and there is this
- advantage about a story, anyway, that whatever moral or valuable thing
- you put into a speech, why, it gets diffused among those involuted
- sentences and possibly your audience goes away without finding out
- what that valuable thing was that you were trying to confer upon it;
- but, dear me, you put the same jewel into a story and it becomes the
- keystone of that story, and you are bound to get it- it flashes, it
- flames, it is the jewel in the toad's head- you don't overlook that.
- Now, if I am going to talk on such a subject as, for instance, the
- lost opportunity- oh, the lost opportunity. Anybody in this house
- who has reached the turn of life- sixty or seventy, or even fifty,
- or along there- when he goes back along his history, there he finds it
- mile-stoned all the way with the lost opportunity, and you know how
- pathetic that is.
- You younger ones cannot know the full pathos that lies in those
- words- the lost opportunity; but anybody who is old, who has really
- lived and felt this life, he knows the pathos of the lost opportunity.
- Now, I will tell you a story whose moral is that, whose lesson is
- that, whose lament is that.
- I was in a village which is a suburb of New Bedford several years
- ago- well, New Bedford is a suburb of Fair Haven, or perhaps it is the
- other way; in any case, it took both of those towns to make a great
- centre of the great whaling industry of the first half of the
- nineteenth century, and I was up there at Fair Haven some years ago
- with a friend of mine.
- There was a dedication of a great town-hall, a public building,
- and we were there in the afternoon. This great building was filled,
- like this great theatre, with rejoicing villagers, and my friend and I
- started down the centre aisle. He saw a man standing in that aisle,
- and he said:
- "Now, look at that bronzed veteran- at that mahogany-faced man. Now,
- tell me, do you see anything about that man's face that is
- emotional? Do you see anything about it that suggests that inside that
- man anywhere there are fires that can be started? Would you ever
- imagine that that is a human volcano?"
- "Why, no," I said, "I would not. He looks like a wooden Indian in
- front of a cigar store."
- "Very well," said my friend, "I will show you that there is
- emotion even in that unpromising place. I will just go to that man and
- I will just mention in the most casual way an incident in his life.
- That man is getting along toward ninety years old. He is past
- eighty. I will mention an incident of fifty or sixty years ago. Now,
- just watch the effect, and it will be so casual that if you don't
- watch you won't know when I do say that thing- but you just watch
- the effect."
- He went on down there and accosted this antiquity, and made a remark
- or two. I could not catch up. They were so casual I could not
- recognize which one it was that touched that bottom, for in an instant
- that old man was literally in eruption and was filling the whole place
- with profanity of the most exquisite kind. You never heard such
- accomplished profanity. I never heard it also delivered with such
- eloquence.
- I never enjoyed profanity as I enjoyed it then- more than if I had
- been uttering it myself. There is nothing like listening to an artist-
- all his passions passing away in lava, smoke, thunder, lightning,
- and earthquake.
- Then this friend said to me: "Now, I will tell you about that. About
- sixty years ago that man was a young fellow of twenty-three, and had
- just come home from a three years' whaling voyage. He came into that
- village of his, happy and proud because now, instead of being chief
- mate, he was going to be master of a whaleship, and he was proud and
- happy about it.
- "Then he found that there had been a kind of a cold frost come
- upon that town and the whole region roundabout; for while he had
- been away the Father Mathew temperance excitement had come upon the
- whole region. Therefore, everybody had taken the pledge; there
- wasn't anybody for miles and miles around that had not taken the
- pledge.
- "So you can see what a solitude it was to this young man, who was
- fond of his grog. And he was just an outcast, because when they
- found he would not join Father Mathew's Society they ostracized him,
- and he went about that town three weeks, day and night, in utter
- loneliness- the only human being in the whole place who ever took
- grog, and he had to take it privately.
- "If you don't know what it is to be ostracized, to be shunned by
- your fellow-man, may you never know it. Then he recognized that
- there was something more valuable in this life than grog, and that
- is the fellowship of your fellow-man. And at last he gave it up, and
- at nine o'clock one night he went down to the Father Mathew Temperance
- Society, and with a broken heart he said: 'Put my name down for
- membership in this society.'
- "And then he went away crying, and at earliest dawn the next morning
- they came for him and routed him out, and they said that new ship of
- his was ready to sail on a three years' voyage. In a minute he was
- on board that ship and gone.
- "And he said- well, he was not out of sight of that town till he
- began to repent, but he had made up his mind that he would not take
- a drink, and so that whole voyage of three years was a three years'
- agony to that man because he saw all the time the mistake he had made.
- "He felt it all through; he had constant reminders of it, because
- the crew would pass him with their grog, come out on the deck and take
- it, and there was the torturous smell of it.
- "He went through the whole three years of suffering, and at last
- coming into port it was snowy, it was cold, he was stamping through
- the snow two feet deep on the deck and longing to get home, and
- there was his crew torturing him to the last minute with hot grog, but
- at last he had his reward. He really did get to shore at last, and
- jumped and ran and bought a jug and rushed to the society's office,
- and said to the secretary:
- "'Take my name off your membership books, and do it right away! I
- have got a three years' thirst on.'
- "And the secretary said: 'It is not necessary. You were
- blackballed!'"
- WATTERSON AND TWAIN AS REBELS.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE CELEBRATION OF ABRAHAM LINCOLN'S 92D
- BIRTHDAY ANNIVERSARY, CARNEGIE HALL, FEBRUARY 11,
- 1901, TO RAISE FUNDS FOR THE LINCOLN MEMORIAL
- UNIVERSITY AT CUMBERLAND GAP, TENN.
-
- LADIES AND GENTLEMEN,- The remainder of my duties as presiding
- chairman here this evening are but two- only two. One of them is easy,
- and the other difficult. That is to say, I must introduce the
- orator, and then keep still and give him a chance. The name of Henry
- Watterson carries with it its own explanation. It is like an
- electric light on top of Madison Square Garden; you touch the button
- and the light flashes up out of the darkness. You mention the name
- of Henry Watterson, and your minds are at once illuminated with the
- splendid radiance of his fame and achievements. A journalist, a
- soldier, an orator, a statesman, a rebel. Yes, he was a rebel; and,
- better still, now he is a reconstructed rebel.
- It is a curious circumstance, a circumstance brought about without
- any collusion or prearrangement, that he and I, both of whom were
- rebels related by blood to each other, should be brought here together
- this evening bearing a tribute in our hands and bowing our heads in
- reverence to that noble soul who for three years we tried to
- destroy. I don't know as the fact has ever been mentioned before,
- but it is a fact, nevertheless. Colonel Watterson and I were both
- rebels, and we are blood relations. I was a second lieutenant in a
- Confederate company- for a while- oh, I could have stayed on if I
- had wanted to. I made myself felt, I left tracks all around the
- country. I could have stayed on, but it was such weather. I never
- saw such weather to be out-of-doors in, in all my life.
- The Colonel commanded a regiment, and did his part, I suppose, to
- destroy the Union. He did not succeed, yet if he had obeyed me he
- would have done so. I had a plan, and I fully intended to drive
- General Grant into the Pacific Ocean- if I could get transportation. I
- told Colonel Watterson about it. I told him what he had to do. What
- I wanted him to do was to surround the Eastern army and wait until I
- came up. But he was insubordinate; he stuck on some quibble of
- military etiquette about a second lieutenant giving orders to a
- colonel or something like that. And what was the consequence? The
- Union was preserved. This is the first time I believe that that secret
- has ever been revealed.
- No one outside of the family circle, I think, knew it before; but
- there the facts are. Watterson saved the Union; yes, he saved the
- Union. And yet there he sits, and not a step has been taken or a
- movement made toward granting him a pension. That is the way things
- are done. It is a case where some blushing ought to be done. You ought
- to blush, and I ought to blush, and he- well, he's a little out of
- practice now.
- ROBERT FULTON FUND.
-
- ADDRESS MADE ON THE EVENING OF APRIL 19, 1906.
-
- Mr. Clemens had been asked to address the association by Gen.
- Frederick D. Grant, president. He was offered a fee of $1000, but
- refused it, saying:
-
- "I shall be glad to do it, but I must stipulate that you keep the
- $1000, and add it to the Memorial Fund as my contribution to erect a
- monument in New York to the memory of the man who applied steam to
- navigation."
-
- At this meeting Mr. Clemens made this formal announcement from the
- platform:
-
- "This is my last appearance on the paid platform. I shall not retire
- from the gratis platform until I am buried, and courtesy will compel
- me to keep still and not disturb the others. Now, since I must, I
- shall say good-bye. I see many faces in this audience well known to
- me. They are all my friends, and I feel that those I don't know are my
- friends, too. I wish to consider that you represent the nation, and
- that in saying good-bye to you I am saying good-bye to the nation.
- In the great name of humanity, let me say this final word: I offer
- an appeal in behalf of that vast, pathetic multitude of fathers,
- mothers, and helpless little children. They were sheltered and happy
- two days ago. Now they are wandering, forlorn, hopeless, and homeless,
- the victims of a great disaster. So I beg of you, I beg of you, to
- open your hearts and open your purses and remember San Francisco,
- the smitten city."
-
- I WISH to deliver a historical address. I've been studying the
- history of- er- a- let me see- a [then he stopped in confusion, and
- walked over to Gen. Fred D. Grant, who sat at the head of the
- platform. He leaned over in a whisper, and then returned to the
- front of the stage and continued]. Oh yes! I've been studying Robert
- Fulton. I've been studying a biographical sketch of Robert Fulton, the
- inventor of- er- a- let's see- oh yes, the inventor of the electric
- telegraph and the Morse sewing-machine. Also, I understand he invented
- the air- diria- pshaw! I have it at last- the dirigible balloon.
- Yes, the dirigible but it is a difficult word, and I don't see why
- anybody should marry a couple of words like that when they don't
- want to be married at all and are likely to quarrel with each other
- all the time. I should put that couple of words under the ban of the
- United States Supreme Court, under its decision of a few days ago, and
- take 'em out and drown 'em.
- I used to know Fulton. It used to do me good to see him dashing
- through the town on a wild broncho.
- And Fulton was born in er- a- well, it doesn't make much
- difference where he was born, does it? I remember a man who came to
- interview me once, to get a sketch of my life. I consulted with a
- friend- a practical man- before he came, to know how I should treat
- him.
- "Whenever you give the interviewer a fact," he said, "give him
- another fact that will contradict it. Then he'll go away with a jumble
- that he can't use at all. Be gentle, be sweet, smile like an idiot-
- just be natural." That's what my friend told me to do, and I did it.
- "Where were you born?" asked the interviewer.
- "Well- er- a," I began, "I was born in Alabama, or Alaska, or the
- Sandwich Islands; I don't know where, but right around there
- somewhere. And you had better put it down before you forget it."
- "But you weren't born in all those places," he said.
- "Well, I've offered you three places. Take your choice. They're
- all at the same price."
- "How old are you?" he asked.
- "I shall be nineteen in June," I said.
- "Why, there's such a discrepancy between your age and your looks,"
- he said.
- "Oh, that's nothing," I said, "I was born discrepantly."
- Then we got to talking about my brother Samuel, and he told me my
- explanations were confusing.
- "I suppose he is dead," I said. "Some said that he was dead and some
- said that he wasn't."
- "Did you bury him without knowing whether he was dead or not?" asked
- the reporter.
- "There was a mystery," said I. "We were twins, and one day when we
- were two weeks old- that is, he was one week old, and I was one week
- old- we got mixed up in the bath-tub, and one of us drowned. We
- never could tell which. One of us had a strawberry birthmark on the
- back of his hand. There it is on my hand. This is the one that was
- drowned. There's no doubt about it."
- "Where's the mystery?" he said.
- "Why, don't you see how stupid it was to bury the wrong twin?" I
- answered. I didn't explain it any more because he said the explanation
- confused him. To me it is perfectly plain.
- But, to get back to Fulton. I'm going along like an old man I used
- to know who used to start to tell a story about his grandfather. He
- had an awfully retentive memory, and he never finished the story,
- because he switched off into something else. He used to tell about how
- his grandfather one day went into a pasture, where there was a ram.
- The old man dropped a silver dime in the grass, and stooped over to
- pick it up. The ram was observing him, and took the old man's action
- as an invitation.
- Just as he was going to finish about the ram this friend of mine
- would recall that his grandfather had a niece who had a glass eye. She
- used to loan that glass eye to another lady friend, who used it when
- she received company. The eye didn't fit the friend's face, and it was
- loose. And whenever she winked it would turn over.
- Then he got on the subject of accidents, and he would tell a story
- about how he believed accidents never happened.
- "There was an Irishman coming down a ladder with a hod of bricks,"
- he said, "and a Dutchman was standing on the ground below. The
- Irishman fell on the Dutchman and killed him. Accident? Never! If
- the Dutchman hadn't been there the Irishman would have been killed.
- Why didn't the Irishman fall on a dog which was next to the
- Dutchman? Because the dog would have seen him coming."
- Then he'd get off from the Dutchman to an uncle named Reginald
- Wilson. Reginald went into a carpet factory one day, and got twisted
- into the machinery's belt. He went excursioning around the factory
- until he was properly distributed and was woven into sixty-nine
- yards of the best three-ply carpet. His wife bought the carpet, and
- then she erected a monument to his memory. It read:
-
- Sacred to the memory
- of
- sixty-nine yards of the best three-ply carpet
- containing the mortal remainders of
-
- REGINALD WILSON
-
- Go thou and do likewise
-
- And so on he would ramble about telling the story of his grandfather
- until we never were told whether he found the ten-cent piece or
- whether something else happened.
- FULTON DAY, JAMESTOWN.
-
- ADDRESS DELIVERED SEPTEMBER 23, 1907.
-
- Lieutenant-Governor Ellyson, of Virginia, in introducing Mr.
- Clemens, said:
- "The people have come here to bring a tribute of affectionate
- recollection for the man who has contributed so much to the progress
- of the world and the happiness of mankind." As Mr. Clemens came down
- to the platform the applause became louder and louder, until Mr.
- Clemens held out his hand for silence. It was a great triumph, and
- it was almost a minute after the applause ceased before Mr. Clemens
- could speak. He attempted it once, and when the audience noticed his
- emotion, it cheered again loudly.
-
- LADIES AND GENTLEMEN,- I am but human, and when you give me a
- reception like that I am obliged to wait a little while I get my
- voice. When you appeal to my head, I don't feel it; but when you
- appeal to my heart, I do feel it.
- We are here to celebrate one of the greatest events of American
- history, and not only in American history, but in the world's history.
- Indeed it was- the application of steam by Robert Fulton.
- It was a world event- there are not many of them. It is peculiarly
- an American event, that is true, but the influence was very broad in
- effect. We should regard this day as a very great American holiday. We
- have not many that are exclusively American holidays. We have the
- Fourth of July, which we regard as an American holiday, but it is
- nothing of the kind. I am waiting for a dissenting voice. All great
- efforts that led up to the Fourth of July were made, not by Americans,
- but by English residents of America, subjects of the King of England.
- They fought all the fighting that was done, they shed and spilt
- all the blood that was spilt, in securing to us the invaluable
- liberties which are incorporated in the Declaration of Independence;
- but they were not Americans. They signed the Declaration of
- Independence; no American's name is signed to that document at all.
- There never was an American such as you and I are until after the
- Revolution, when it had all been fought out and liberty secured, after
- the adoption of the Constitution, and the recognition of the
- Independence of America by all powers.
- While we revere the Fourth of July- and let us always revere it, and
- the liberties it conferred upon us- yet it was not an American
- event, a great American day.
- It was an American who applied that steam successfully. There are
- not a great many world events, and we have our full share. The
- telegraph, telephone, and the application of steam to navigation-
- these are great American events.
- To-day I have been requested, or I have requested myself, not to
- confine myself to furnishing you with information, but to remind you
- of things, and to introduce one of the nation's celebrants.
- Admiral Harrington here is going to tell you all that I have left
- untold. I am going to tell you all that I know, and then he will
- follow up with such rags and remnants as he can find, and tell you
- what he knows.
- No doubt you have heard a great deal about Robert Fulton and the
- influences that have grown from his invention, but the little
- steamboat is suffering neglect.
- You probably do not know a great deal about that boat. It was the
- most important steamboat in the world. I was there and saw it. Admiral
- Harrington was there at the time. It need not surprise you, for he
- is not as old as he looks. That little boat was interesting in every
- way. The size of it. The boat was one [consults Admiral], he said
- ten feet long. The breadth of that boat [consults Admiral], two
- hundred feet. You see, the first and most important detail is the
- length, then the breadth, and then the depth; the depth of that boat
- was [consults again]- the Admiral says it was a flat boat. Then her
- tonnage- you know nothing about a boat until you know two more things:
- her speed and her tonnage. We know the speed she made. She made four
- miles- and sometimes five miles. It was on her initial trip, on August
- 11, 1807, that she made her initial trip, when she went from [consults
- Admiral] Jersey City- to Chicago. That's right. She went by way of
- Albany. Now comes the tonnage of that boat. Tonnage of a boat means
- the amount of displacement; displacement means the amount of water a
- vessel can shove in a day. The tonnage of man is estimated by the
- amount of whiskey he can displace in a day.
- Robert Fulton named the Clermont in honor of his bride, that is,
- Clermont was the name of the county-seat.
- I feel that it surprises you that I know so much. In my remarks of
- welcome of Admiral Harrington I am not going to give him
- compliments. Compliments always embarrass a man. You do not know
- anything to say. It does not inspire you with words. There is
- nothing you can say in answer to a compliment. I have been
- complimented myself a great many times, and they always embarrass
- me- I always feel that they have not said enough.
- The Admiral and myself have held public office, and were
- associated together a great deal in a friendly way in the time of
- Pocahontas. That incident where Pocahontas saves the life of Smith
- from her father, Powhatan's club, was gotten up by the Admiral and
- myself to advertise Jamestown.
- At that time the Admiral and myself did not have the facilities of
- advertising that you have.
- I have known Admiral Harrington in all kinds of situations- in
- public service, on the platform, and in the chain-gang now and then-
- but it was a mistake. A case of mistaken identity. I do not think it
- is at all a necessity to tell you Admiral Harrington's public history.
- You know that it is in the histories. I am not here to tell you
- anything about his public life, but to expose his private life.
- I am something of a poet. When the great poet laureate, Tennyson,
- died, and I found that the place was open, I tried to get it- but I
- did not get it. Anybody can write the first line of a poem, but it
- is a very difficult task to make the second line rhyme with the first.
- When I was down in Australia there were two towns named Johnswood
- and Par-am. I made this rhyme:
-
- "The people of Johnswood are pious and good;
- The people of Par-am they don't care a-"
-
- I do not want to compliment Admiral Harrington, but as long as
- such men as he devote their lives to the public service the credit
- of the country will never cease. I will say that the same high
- qualities, the same moral and intellectual attainments, the same
- graciousness of manner, of conduct, of observation, and expression
- have caused Admiral Harrington to be mistaken for me- and I have
- been mistaken for him.
- A mutual compliment can go no further, and I now have the honor
- and privilege of introducing to you Admiral Harrington.
- LOTOS CLUB DINNER IN HONOR
- OF MARK TWAIN.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE FIRST FORMAL DINNER IN THE NEW CLUB-HOUSE,
- NOVEMBER 11, 1893.
-
- In introducing the guest of the evening, Mr. Lawrence said:
- "To-night the old faces appear once more amid new surroundings.
- The place where last we met about the table has vanished, and to-night
- we have our first Lotos dinner in a home that is all our own. It is
- peculiarly fitting that the board should now be spread in honor of one
- who has been a member of the club for full a score of years, and it is
- a happy augury for the future that our fellow-member whom we
- assemble to greet should be the bearer of a most distinguished name in
- the world of letters; for the Lotos Club is ever at its best when
- paying homage to genius in literature or in art. Is there a
- civilized being who has not heard the name of Mark Twain? We knew
- him long years ago, before he came out of the boundless West,
- brimful of wit and eloquence, with no reverence for anything, and went
- abroad to educate the untutored European in the subtleties of the
- American joke. The world has looked on and applauded while he has
- broken many images. He has led us in imagination all over the globe.
- With him as our guide we have traversed alike the Mississippi and
- the Sea of Galilee. At his bidding we have laughed at a thousand
- absurdities. By a laborious process of reasoning he has convinced us
- that the Egyptian mummies are actually dead. He has held us spellbound
- upon the plain at the foot of the great Sphinx, and we have joined him
- in weeping bitter tears at the tomb of Adam. To-night we greet him
- in the flesh. What name is there in literature that can be likened
- to his? Perhaps some of the distinguished gentlemen about this table
- can tell us, but I know of none. Himself his only parallel!"
-
- MR. PRESIDENT, GENTLEMEN, AND FELLOW-MEMBERS OF THE LOTOS CLUB,- I
- have seldom in my lifetime listened to compliments so felicitously
- phrased or so well deserved. I return thanks for them from a full
- heart and an appreciative spirit, and I will say this in self-defence:
- While I am charged with having no reverence for anything, I wish to
- say that I have reverence for the man who can utter such truths, and I
- also have a deep reverence and a sincere one for a club that can do
- such justice to me. To be the chief guest of such a club is
- something to be envied, and if I read your countenances rightly I am
- envied. I am glad to see this club in such palatial quarters. I
- remember it twenty years ago when it was housed in a stable.
- Now when I was studying for the ministry there were two or three
- things that struck my attention particularly. At the first banquet
- mentioned in history that other prodigal son who came back from his
- travels was invited to stand up and have his say. They were all there,
- his brethren, David and Goliath, and er, and if he had had such
- experience as I have had he would have waited until those other people
- got through talking. He got up and testified to all his failings.
- Now if he had waited before telling all about his riotous living until
- the others had spoken he might not have given himself away as he
- did, and I think that I would give myself away if I should go on. I
- think I'd better wait until the others hand in their testimony; then
- if it is necessary for me to make an explanation, I will get up and
- explain, and if I cannot do that, I'll deny it happened.
-
- Later in the evening Mr. Clemens made another speech, replying to
- a fire of short speeches by Charles Dudley Warner, Charles A. Dana,
- Seth Low, General Porter, and many others, each welcoming the guest of
- honor.
-
- I don't see that I have a great deal to explain. I got off very
- well, considering the opportunities that these other fellows had. I
- don't see that Mr. Low said anything against me, and neither did Mr.
- Dana. However, I will say that I never heard so many lies told in
- one evening as were told by Mr. McKelway- and I consider myself very
- capable; but even in his case, when he got through, I was gratified by
- finding how much he hadn't found out. By accident he missed the very
- things that I didn't want to have said, and now, gentlemen, about
- Americanism.
- I have been on the continent of Europe for two and a half years. I
- have met many Americans there, some sojourning for a short time
- only, others making protracted stays, and it has been very
- gratifying to me to find that nearly all preserved their
- Americanism. I have found they all like to see the Flag fly, and
- that their hearts rise when they see the Stars and Stripes. I met only
- one lady who had forgotten the land of her birth and glorified
- monarchical institutions.
- I think it is a great thing to say that in two and a half years I
- met only one person who had fallen a victim to the shams- I think we
- may call them shams- of nobilities and of heredities. She was entirely
- lost in them. After I had listened to her for a long time, I said to
- her: "At least you must admit that we have one merit. We are not
- like the Chinese, who refuse to allow their citizens who are tired
- of the country to leave it. Thank God, we don't!"
- COPYRIGHT
- COPYRIGHT.
-
- With Mr. Howells, Edward Everett Hale, Thomas Nelson Page, and a
- number of other authors, Mr. Clemens appeared before the committee
- December 6, 1906. The new Copyright Bill contemplated an author's
- copyright for the term of his life and for fifty years thereafter,
- applying also for the benefit of artists, musicians, and others, but
- the authors did most of the talking. F. D. Millet made a speech for
- the artists, and John Philip Sousa for the musicians.
- Mr. Clemens was the last speaker of the day, and its chief
- feature. He made a speech, the serious, parts of which created a
- strong impression, and the humorous parts set the Senators and
- Representatives in roars of laughter.
-
- I HAVE read this bill. At least I have read such portions as I could
- understand. Nobody but a practised legislator can read the bill and
- thoroughly understand it, and I am not a practised legislator.
- I am interested particularly and especially in the part of the
- bill which concerns my trade. I like that extension of copyright
- life to the author's life and fifty years afterward. I think that
- would satisfy any reasonable author, because it would take care of his
- children. Let the grand-children take care of themselves. That would
- take care of my daughters, and after that I am not particular. I shall
- then have long been out of this struggle, independent of it,
- indifferent to it.
- It isn't objectionable to me that all the trades and professions
- in the United States are protected by the bill. I like that. They
- are all important and worthy, and if we can take care of them under
- the Copyright law I should like to see it done. I should like to see
- oyster culture added, and anything else.
- I am aware that copyright must have a limit, because that is
- required by the Constitution of the United States, which sets aside
- the earlier Constitution, which we call the decalogue. The decalogue
- says you shall not take away from any man his profit. I don't like
- to be obliged to use the harsh term. What the decalogue really says
- is, "Thou shalt not steal," but I am trying to use more polite
- language.
- The laws of England and America do take it away, do select but one
- class, the people who create the literature of the land. They always
- talk handsomely about the literature of the land, always what a
- fine, great, monumental thing a great literature is, and in the
- midst of their enthusiasm they turn around and do what they can to
- discourage it.
- I know we must have a limit, but forty-two years is too much of a
- limit. I am quite unable to guess why there should be a limit at all
- to the possession of the product of a man's labor. There is no limit
- to real estate.
- Doctor Hale has suggested that a man might just as well, after
- discovering a coal-mine and working it forty-two years, have the
- Government step in and take it away.
- What is the excuse? It is that the author who produced that book has
- had the profit of it long enough, and therefore the Government takes a
- profit which does not belong to it and generously gives it to the
- 88,000,000 of people. But it doesn't do anything of the kind. It
- merely takes the author's property, takes his children's bread, and
- gives the publisher double profit. He goes on publishing the book
- and as many of his confederates as choose to go into the conspiracy do
- so, and they rear families in affluence.
- And they continue the enjoyment of those ill-gotten gains generation
- after generation forever, for they never die. In a few weeks or months
- or years I shall be out of it, I hope under a monument. I hope I shall
- not be entirely forgotten, and I shall subscribe to the monument
- myself. But I shall not be caring what happens if there are fifty
- years left of my copyright. My copyright produces annually a good deal
- more than I can use, but my children can use it. I can get along; I
- know a lot of trades. But that goes to my daughters, who can't get
- along as well as I can because I have carefully raised them as young
- ladies, who don't know anything and can't do anything. I hope Congress
- will extend to them the charity which they have failed to get from me.
- Why, if a man who is not even mad, but only strenuous- strenuous
- about race- suicide- should come to me and try to get me to use my
- large political and ecclesiastical influence to get a bill passed by
- this Congress limiting families to twenty-two children by one
- mother, I should try to calm him down. I should reason with him. I
- should say to him, "Leave it alone. Leave it alone and it will take
- care of itself. Only one couple a year in the United States can
- reach that limit. If they have reached that limit let them go right
- on. Let them have all the liberty they want. In restricting that
- family to twenty-two children you are merely conferring discomfort and
- unhappiness on one family per year in a nation of 88,000,000, which is
- not worth while."
- It is the very same with copyright. One author per year produces a
- book which can outlive the forty-two-year limit; that's all. This
- nation can't produce two authors a year that can do it; the thing is
- demonstrably impossible. All that the limited copyright can do is to
- take the bread out of the mouths of the children of that one author
- per year.
- I made an estimate some years ago, when I appeared before a
- committee of the House of Lords, that we had published in this country
- since the Declaration of Independence 220,000 books. They have all
- gone. They had all perished before they were ten years old. It is only
- one book in 1000 that can outlive the forty-two-year limit.
- Therefore why put a limit at all? You might as well limit the family
- to twenty-two children.
- If you recall the Americans in the nineteenth century who wrote
- books that lived forty-two years you will have to begin with Cooper;
- you can follow with Washington Irving, Harriet Beecher Stowe, Edgar
- Allan Poe, and there you have to wait a long time. You come to
- Emerson, and you have to stand still and look further. You find
- Howells and T. B. Aldrich, and, then your numbers begin to run
- pretty thin, and you question if you can name twenty persons in the
- United States who in a whole century have written books that would
- live forty-two years. Why, you could take them all and put them on one
- bench there [pointing]. Add the wives and children and you could put
- the result on two or three more benches.
- One hundred persons- that is the little, insignificant crowd whose
- bread-and-butter is to be taken away for what purpose, for what profit
- to anybody? You turn these few books into the hands of the pirate
- and of the legitimate publisher, too, and they get the profit that
- should have gone to the wife and children.
- When I appeared before that committee of the House of Lords the
- chairman asked me what limit I would propose. I said, "Perpetuity."
- I could see some resentment in his manner, and he said the idea was
- illogical, for the reason that it has long ago been decided that there
- can be no such thing as property in ideas. I said there was property
- in ideas before Queen Anne's time; they had perpetual copyright. He
- said, "What is a book? A book is just built from base to roof on
- ideas, and there can be no property in it."
- I said I wished he could mention any kind of property on this planet
- that had a pecuniary value which was not derived from an idea or
- ideas. He said real estate. I put a supposititious case, a dozen
- Englishmen who travel through South Africa and camp out, and eleven of
- them see nothing at all; they are mentally blind. But there is one
- in the party who knows what this harbor means and what the lay of
- the land means. To him it means that some day a railway will go
- through here, and there on that harbor a great city will spring up.
- That is his idea. And he has another idea, which is to go and trade
- his last bottle of Scotch whiskey and his last horse-blanket to the
- principal chief of that region and buy a piece of land the size of
- Pennsylvania. That was the value of an idea that the day would come
- when the Cape to Cairo Railway would be built.
- Every improvement that is put upon the real estate is the result
- of an idea in somebody's head. The skyscraper is another idea; the
- railroad is another; the telephone and all those things are merely
- symbols which represent ideas. An andiron, a wash-tub, is the result
- of an idea that did not exist before.
- So if, as that gentleman said, a book does consist solely of
- ideas, that is the best argument in the world that it is property, and
- should not be under any limitation at all. We don't ask for that.
- Fifty years from now we shall ask for it.
- I hope the bill will pass without any deleterious amendments. I do
- seem to be extraordinarily interested in a whole lot of arts and
- things that I have got nothing to do with. It is a part of my
- generous, liberal nature; I can't help it. I feel the same sort of
- charity to everybody that was manifested by a gentleman who arrived at
- home at two o'clock in the morning from the club and was feeling so
- perfectly satisfied with life, so happy, and so comfortable, and there
- was his house weaving, weaving, weaving around. He watched his chance,
- and by and by when the steps got in his neighborhood he made a jump
- and climbed up and got on the portico.
- And the house went on weaving and weaving and weaving, but he
- watched the door, and when it came around his way he plunged through
- it. He got to the stairs, and when he went up on all fours the house
- was so unsteady that he could hardly make his way, but at last he
- got to the top and raised his foot and put it on the top step. But
- only the toe hitched on the step, and he rolled down and fetched up on
- the bottom step, with his arm around the newel-post, and he said: "God
- pity the poor sailors out at sea on a night like this."
- IN AID OF THE BLIND.
-
- ADDRESS AT A PUBLIC MEETING OF THE NEW YORK
- ASSOCIATION FOR PROMOTING THE INTERESTS
- OF THE BLIND AT THE WALDORF-ASTORIA,
- MARCH 29, 1906.
-
- IF You detect any awkwardness in my movements and infelicities in my
- conduct I will offer the explanation that I never presided at a
- meeting of any kind before in my life, and that I do find it out of my
- line. I supposed I could do anything anybody else could, but I
- recognize that experience helps, and I do feel the lack of that
- experience. I don't feel as graceful and easy as I ought to be
- in-order to impress an audience. I shall not pretend that I know how
- to umpire a meeting like this, and I shall just take the humble
- place of the Essex band.
- There was a great gathering in a small New England town about
- twenty-five years ago. I remember that circumstance because there
- was something that happened at that time. It was a great occasion.
- They gathered in the militia and orators and everybody from all the
- towns around. It was an extraordinary occasion.
- The little local paper threw itself into ecstasies of admiration and
- tried to do itself proud from beginning to end. It praised the
- orators, the militia, and all the bands that came from everywhere, and
- all this in honest country newspaper detail, but the writer ran out of
- adjectives toward the end. Having exhausted his whole magazine of
- praise and glorification, he found he still had one band left over. He
- had to say something about it, and he said: "The Essex band done the
- best it could."
- I am an Essex band on this occasion, and I am going to get through
- as well as inexperience and good intentions will enable me. I have got
- all the documents here necessary to instruct you in the objects and
- intentions of this meeting and also of the association which has
- called the meeting. But they are too voluminous. I could not pack
- those statistics into my head, and I had to give it up. I shall have
- to just reduce all that mass of statistics to a few salient facts.
- There are too many statistics and figures for me. I never could do
- anything with figures, never had any talent for mathematics, never
- accomplished anything in my efforts at that rugged study, and to-day
- the only mathematics I know is multiplication, and the minute I get
- away up in that, as soon as I reach nine times seven-
- [Mr. Clemens lapsed into deep thought for a moment. He was trying to
- figure out nine times seven, but it was a hopeless task, and he turned
- to St. Clair McKelway, who sat near him. Mr. McKelway whispered the
- answer, and the speaker resumed:]
- I've got it now. It's eighty-four. Well, I can get that far all
- right with a little hesitation. After that I am uncertain, and I can't
- manage a statistic.
- "This association for the"-
- [Mr. Clemens was in another dilemma. Again he was obliged to turn to
- Mr. McKelway.]
- Oh yes, for promoting the interests of the blind. It's a long
- name. If I could I would write it out for you and let you take it home
- and study it, but I don't know how to spell it. And Mr. Carnegie is
- down in Virginia somewhere. Well, anyway, the object of that
- association which has been recently organized, five months ago, in
- fact, is in the hands of very, very energetic, intelligent, and
- capable people, and they will push it to success very surely, and
- all the more surely if you will give them a little of your
- assistance out of your pockets.
- The intention, the purpose, is to search out all the blind and
- find work for them to do so that they may earn their own bread. Now it
- is dismal enough to be blind- it is dreary, dreary life at best, but
- it can be largely ameliorated by finding something for these poor
- blind people to do with their hands. The time passes so heavily that
- it is never day or night with them, it is always night, and when
- they have to sit with folded hands and with nothing to do to amuse
- or entertain or employ their minds, it is drearier and drearier.
- And then the knowledge they have that they must subsist on
- charity, and so often reluctant charity, it would renew their lives if
- they could have something to do with their hands and pass their time
- and at the same time earn their bread, and know the sweetness of the
- bread which is the result of the labor of one's own hands. They need
- that cheer and pleasure. It is the only way you can turn their night
- into day, to give them happy hearts, the only thing you can put in the
- place of the blessed sun. That you can do in the way I speak of.
- Blind people generally who have seen the light know what it is to
- miss the light. Those who have gone blind since they were twenty years
- old- their lives are unendingly dreary. But they can be taught to
- use their hands and to employ themselves at a great many industries.
- That association from which this draws its birth in Cambridge,
- Massachusetts, has taught its blind to make many things. They make
- them better than most people, and more honest than people who have the
- use of their eyes. The goods they make are readily salable. People
- like them. And so they are supporting themselves, and it is a matter
- of cheer, cheer. They pass their time now not too irksomely as they
- formerly did.
- What this association needs and wants is $15,000. The figures are
- set down, and what the money is for, and there is no graft in it or
- I would not be here. And they hope to beguile that out of your
- pockets, and you will find affixed to the programme an opportunity,
- that little blank which you will fill out and promise so much money
- now or to-morrow or some time. Then, there is another opportunity
- which is still better, and that is that you shall subscribe an
- annual sum.
- I have invented a good many useful things in my time, but never
- anything better than that of getting money out of people who don't
- want to part with it. It is always for good objects, of course. This
- is the plan: When you call upon a person to contribute to a great
- and good object, and you think he should furnish about $1000, he
- disappoints you as like as not. Much the best way to work him to
- supply that thousand dollars is to split it into parts and contribute,
- say a hundred dollars a year, or fifty, or whatever the sum may be.
- Let him contribute ten or twenty a year. He doesn't feel that, but
- he does feel it when you call upon him to contribute a large amount.
- When you get used to it you would rather contribute than borrow money.
- I tried it in Helen Keller's case. Mr. Hutton wrote me in 1896 or
- 1897 when I was in London and said: "The gentleman who has been so
- liberal in taking care of Helen Keller has died without making
- provision for her in his will, and now they don't know what to do."
- They were proposing to raise a fund, and he thought $50,000 enough
- to furnish an income of $2400 or $2500 a year for the support of
- that wonderful girl and her wonderful teacher, Miss Sullivan, now Mrs.
- Macy. I wrote to Mr. Hutton and said: "Go on, get up your fund. It
- will be slow, but if you want quick work, I propose this system,"
- the system I speak of, of asking people to contribute such and such
- a sum from year to year and drop out whenever they please, and he
- would find there wouldn't be any difficulty, people wouldn't feel
- the burden of it. And he wrote back saying he had raised the $2400 a
- year indefinitely by that system in a single afternoon. We would
- like to do something just like that to-night. We will take as many
- checks as you care to give. You can leave your donations in the big
- room outside.
- I knew once what it was to be blind. I shall never forget that
- experience. I have been as blind as anybody ever was for three or four
- hours, and the sufferings that I endured and the mishaps and the
- accidents that are burning in my memory make my sympathy rise when I
- feel for the blind and always shall feel. I once went to Heidelberg on
- an excursion. I took a clergyman along with me, the Rev. Joseph
- Twichell, of Hartford, who is still among the living despite that
- fact. I always travel with clergymen when I can. It is better for
- them, it is better for me. And any preacher who goes out with me in
- stormy weather and without a lightning rod is a good one. The Reverend
- Twichell is one of those people filled with patience and endurance,
- two good ingredients for a man travelling with me, so we got along
- very well together. In that old town they have not altered a house nor
- built one in 1500 years. We went to the inn and they placed Twichell
- and me in a most colossal bedroom, the largest I ever saw or heard of.
- It was as big as this room.
- I didn't take much notice of the place. I didn't really get my
- bearings. I noticed Twichell got a German bed about two feet wide, the
- kind in which you've got to lie on your edge, because there isn't room
- to lie on your back, and he was way down south in that big room, and I
- was way up north at the other end of it, with a regular Sahara in
- between.
- We went to bed. Twichell went to sleep, but then he had his
- conscience loaded and it was easy for him to get to sleep. I
- couldn't get to sleep. It was one of those torturing kinds of lovely
- summer nights when you hear various kinds of noises now and then. A
- mouse away off in the southwest. You throw things at the mouse. That
- encourages the mouse. But I couldn't stand it, and about two o'clock I
- got up and thought I would give it up and go out in the square where
- there was one of those tinkling fountains, and sit on its brink and
- dream, full of romance.
- I got out of bed, and I ought to have lit a candle, but I didn't
- think of it until it was too late. It was the darkest place that
- ever was. There has never been darkness any thicker than that. It just
- lay in cakes.
- I thought that before dressing I would accumulate my clothes. I
- pawed around in the dark and found everything packed together on the
- floor except one sock. I couldn't get on the track of that sock. It
- might have occurred to me that maybe it was in the wash. But I
- didn't think of that. I went excursioning on my hands and knees.
- Presently I thought, "I am never going to find it; I'll go back to bed
- again." That is what I tried to do during the next three hours. I
- had lost the bearings of that bed. I was going in the wrong
- direction all the time. By-and-by I came in collision with a chair and
- that encouraged me.
- It seemed to me, as far as I could recollect, there was only a chair
- here and there and yonder, five or six of them scattered over this
- territory, and I thought maybe after I found that chair I might find
- the next one. Well, I did. And I found another and another and
- another. I kept going around on my hands and knees, having those
- sudden collisions, and finally when I banged into another chair I
- almost lost my temper. And I raised up, garbed as I was, not for
- public exhibition, right in front of a mirror fifteen or sixteen
- feet high.
- I hadn't noticed the mirror; didn't know it was there. And when I
- saw myself in the mirror I was frightened out of my wits. I don't
- allow any ghosts to bite me, and I took up a chair and smashed at
- it. A million pieces. Then I reflected. That's the way I always do,
- and it's unprofitable unless a man has had much experience that way
- and has clear judgment. And I had judgment, and I would have had to
- pay for that mirror if I hadn't recollected to say it was Twichell who
- broke it.
- Then I got down on my hands and knees and went on another
- exploring expedition.
- As far as I could remember there were six chairs in that Oklahoma,
- and one table, a great big heavy table, not a good table to hit with
- your head when rushing madly along. In the course of time I collided
- with thirty-five chairs and tables enough to stock that dining-room
- out there. It was a hospital for decayed furniture, and it was in a
- worse condition when I got through with it. I went on and on, and at
- last got to a place where I could feel my way up, and there was a
- shelf. I knew that wasn't in the middle of the room. Up to that time I
- was afraid I had gotten out of the city.
- I was very careful and pawed along that shelf, and there was a
- pitcher of water about a foot high, and it was at the head of
- Twichell's bed, but I didn't know it. I felt that pitcher going and
- I grabbed at it, but it didn't help any and came right down in
- Twichell's face and nearly drowned him. But it woke him up. I was
- grateful to have company on any terms. He lit a match, and there I
- was, way down south when I ought to have been back up yonder. My bed
- was out of sight it was so far away. You needed a telescope to find
- it. Twichell comforted me and I scrubbed him off and we got sociable.
- But that night wasn't wasted. I had my pedometer on my leg. Twichell
- and I were in a pedometer match. Twichell had longer legs than I.
- The only way I could keep up was to wear my pedometer to bed. I always
- walk in my sleep, and on this occasion I gained sixteen miles on
- him. After all, I never found that sock. I never have seen it from
- that day to this. But that adventure taught me what it is to be blind.
- That was one of the most serious occasions of my whole life, yet I
- never can speak of it without somebody thinking it isn't serious.
- You try it and see how serious it is to be as the blind are and I
- was that night.
- [Mr. Clemens read several letters of regret. He then introduced
- Joseph H. Choate, saying:]
- It is now my privilege to present to you Mr. Choate. I don't have to
- really introduce him. I don't have to praise him, or to flatter him. I
- could say truly that in the forty-seven years I have been familiarly
- acquainted with him he has always been the handsomest man America
- has ever produced. And I hope and believe he will hold the belt
- forty-five years more. He has served his country ably, faithfully, and
- brilliantly. He stands at the summit, at the very top in the esteem
- and regard of his countrymen, and if I could say one word which
- would lift him any higher in his countrymen's esteem and affection,
- I would say that word whether it was true or not.
- DR. MARK TWAIN, FARMEOPATH.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE ANNUAL DINNER OF THE NEW YORK POST-GRADUATE
- MEDICAL SCHOOL AND HOSPITAL, JANUARY 21, 1909.
-
- The president, Dr. George N. Miller, in introducing Mr. Clemens,
- referred to his late experience with burglars.
-
- GENTLEMEN AND DOCTORS,- I am glad to be among my own kind
- to-night. I was once a sharpshooter, but now I practise a much
- higher and equally as deadly a profession. It wasn't so very long
- ago that I became a member of your cult, and for the time I've been in
- the business my record is one that can't be scoffed at.
- As to the burglars, I am perfectly familiar with these people. I
- have always had a good deal to do with burglars- not officially, but
- through their attentions to me. I never suffered anything at the hands
- of a burglar. They have invaded my house time and time again. They
- never got anything. Then those people who burglarized our house in
- September- we got back the plated ware they took off, we jailed
- them, and I have been sorry ever since. They did us a great service-
- they scared off all the servants in the place.
- I consider the Children's Theatre, of which I am president, and
- the Post-Graduate Medical School as the two greatest institutions in
- the country. This school, in bringing its twenty thousand physicians
- from all parts of the country, bringing them up to date, and sending
- them back with renewed confidence, has surely saved hundreds of
- thousands of lives which otherwise would have been lost.
- I have been practising now for seven months. When I settled on my
- farm in Connecticut in June I found the community very thinly settled-
- and since I have been engaged in practice it has become more thinly
- settled still. This gratifies me, as indicating that I am making an
- impression on my community. I suppose it is the same with all of you.
- I have always felt that I ought to do something for you, and so I
- organized a Redding (Connecticut) branch of the Post-Graduate
- School. I am only a country farmer up there, but I am doing the best I
- can.
- Of course, the practice of medicine and surgery in a remote
- country district has its disadvantages, but in my case I am happy in a
- division of responsibility. I practise in conjunction with a
- horse-doctor, a sexton, and an undertaker. The combination is
- air-tight, and once a man is stricken in our district escape is
- impossible for him.
- These four of us- three in the regular profession and the fourth
- an undertaker- are all good men. There is Bill Ferguson, the Redding
- undertaker. Bill is there in every respect. He is a little lukewarm on
- general practice, and writes his name with a rubber stamp. Like my old
- Southern friend, he is one of the finest planters anywhere.
- Then there is Jim Ruggles, the horse-doctor. Ruggles is one of the
- best men I have got. He also is not much on general medicine, but he
- is a fine horse-doctor. Ferguson doesn't make any money off him.
- You see, the combination started this way. When I got up to
- Redding and had become a doctor, I looked around to see what my
- chances were for aiding in the great work. The first thing I did was
- to determine what manner of doctor I was to be. Being a Connecticut
- farmer, I naturally consulted my farmacopia, and at once decided to
- become a farmeopath.
- Then I got circulating about, and got in touch with Ferguson and
- Ruggles. Ferguson joined readily in my ideas, but Ruggles kept
- saying that, while it was all right for an undertaker to get aboard,
- he couldn't see where it helped horses.
- Well, we started to find out what was the trouble with the
- community, and it didn't take long to find out that there was just one
- disease, and that was race-suicide. And driving about the country-side
- I was told by my fellow-farmers that it was the only rational human
- and valuable disease. But it is cutting into our profits so that we'll
- either have to stop it or we'll have to move.
- We've had some funny experiences up there in Redding. Not long ago a
- fellow came along with a rolling gait and a distressed face. We
- asked him what was the matter. We always hold consultations on every
- case, as there isn't business enough for four. He said he didn't know,
- but that he was a sailor, and perhaps that might help us to give a
- diagnosis. We treated him for that, and I never saw a man die more
- peacefully.
- That same afternoon my dog Tige treed an African gentleman. We
- chained up the dog, and then the gentleman came down and said he had
- appendicitis. We asked him if he wanted to be cut open, and he said
- yes, that he'd like to know if there was anything in it. So we cut him
- open and found nothing in him but darkness. So we diagnosed his case
- as infidelity, because he was dark inside. Tige is a very clever
- dog, and aids us greatly.
- The other day a patient came to me and inquired if I was old
- Doctor Clemens-
- As a practitioner I have given a great deal of my attention to
- Bright's disease. I have made some rules for treating it that may be
- valuable. Listen:
- Rule 1. When approaching the bedside of one whom an all-wise
- President- I mean an all-wise Providence- well, anyway, it's the
- same thing- has seen fit to afflict with disease- well, the rule is
- simple, even if it is old-fashioned.
- Rule 2. I've forgotten just what it is, but-
- Rule 3. This is always indispensable: Bleed your patient.
- MISSOURI UNIVERSITY SPEECH.
-
- ADDRESS DELIVERED JUNE 4, 1902, AT COLUMBIA, MO.
-
- When the name of Samuel L. Clemens was called the humorist stepped
- forward, put his hand to his hair, and apparently hesitated. There was
- a dead silence for a moment. Suddenly the entire audience rose and
- stood in silence. Some one began to spell out the word Missouri with
- an interval between the letters. All joined in. Then the house again
- became silent. Mr. Clemens broke the spell:
-
- AS you are all standing [he drawled in his characteristic voice],
- I guess, I suppose I had better stand too.
- [Then came a laugh and loud cries for a speech. As the great
- humorist spoke of his recent visit to Hannibal, his old home, his
- voice trembled.]
- You cannot know what a strain it was on my emotions [he said]. In
- fact, when I found myself shaking hands with persons I had not seen
- for fifty years and looking into wrinkled faces that were so young and
- joyous when I last saw them, I experienced emotions that I had never
- expected, and did not know were in me. I was profoundly moved and
- saddened to think that this was the last time, perhaps, that I would
- ever behold those kind old faces and dear old scenes of childhood.
- [The humorist then changed to a lighter mood, and for a time the
- audience was in a continual roar of laughter. He was particularly
- amused at the eulogy on himself read by Gardiner Lathrop in conferring
- the degree.] He has a fine opportunity to distinguish himself [said
- Mr. Clemens] by telling the truth about me.
- I have seen it stated in print that as a boy I had been guilty of
- stealing peaches, apples, and watermelons. I read a story to this
- effect very closely not long ago, and I was convinced of one thing,
- which was that the man who wrote it was of the opinion that it was
- wrong to steal, and that I had not acted right in doing so. I wish
- now, however, to make an honest statement, which is that I do not
- believe, in all my checkered career, I stole a ton of peaches.
- One night I stole- I mean I removed- a watermelon from a wagon while
- the owner was attending to another customer. I crawled off to a
- secluded spot, where I found that it was green. It was the greenest
- melon in the Mississippi Valley. Then I began to reflect. I began to
- be sorry. I wondered what George Washington would have done had he
- been in my place. I thought a long time, and then suddenly felt that
- strange feeling which comes to a man with a good resolution, and
- took up that watermelon and took it back to its owner. I handed him
- the watermelon and told him to reform. He took my lecture much to
- heart, and, when he gave me a good one in place of the green melon,
- I forgave him.
- I told him that I would still be a customer of his, and that I
- cherished no ill-feeling because of the incident- that would remain
- green in my memory.
- BUSINESS
- BUSINESS.
-
- The alumni of Eastman College gave their annual banquet, March 30,
- 1901, at the Y. M. C. A. Building. Mr. James G. Cannon, of the
- Fourth National Bank, made the first speech of the evening, after
- which Mr. Clemens was introduced by Mr. Bailey as the personal
- friend of Tom Sawyer, who was one of the types of successful
- business men.
-
- MR. CANNON has furnished me with texts enough to last as slow a
- speaker as myself all the rest of the night. I took exception to the
- introducing of Mr. Cannon as a great financier, as if he were the only
- great financier present. I am a financier. But my methods are not
- the same as Mr. Cannon's.
- I cannot say that I have turned out the great business man that I
- thought I was when I began life. But I am comparatively young yet, and
- may learn. I am rather inclined to believe that what troubled me was
- that I got the big-head early in the game. I want to explain to you
- a few points of difference between the principles of business as I see
- them and those that Mr. Cannon believes in.
- He says that the primary rule of business success is loyalty to your
- employer. That's all right- as a theory. What is the matter with
- loyalty to yourself? As nearly as I can understand Mr. Cannon's
- methods, there is one great drawback to them. He wants you to work a
- great deal. Diligence is a good thing, but taking things easy is
- much more- restful. My idea is that the employer should be the busy
- man, and the employee the idle one. The employer should be the worried
- man, and the employee the happy one. And why not? He gets the
- salary. My plan is to get another man to do the work for me. In that
- there's more repose. What I want is repose first, last, and all the
- time.
- Mr. Cannon says that there are three cardinal rules of business
- success; they are diligence, honesty, and truthfulness. Well,
- diligence is all right. Let it go as a theory. Honesty is the best
- policy- when there is money in it. But truthfulness is one of the most
- dangerous- why, this man is misleading you.
- I had an experience to-day with my wife which illustrates this. I
- was acknowledging a belated invitation to another dinner for this
- evening, which seemed to have been sent about ten days ago. It only
- reached me this morning. I was mortified at the discourtesy into which
- I had been brought by this delay, and wondered what was being
- thought of me by my hosts. As I had accepted your invitation, of
- course I had to send regrets to my other friends.
- When I started to write this note my wife came up and stood
- looking over my shoulder. Women always want to know what is going
- on. Said she: "Should not that read in the third person?" I conceded
- that it should, put aside what I was writing, and commenced over
- again. That seemed to satisfy her, and so she sat down and let me
- proceed. I then finished my first note- and so sent what I intended. I
- never could have done this if I had let my wife know the truth about
- it. Here is what I wrote:
-
- TO THE OHIO SOCIETY,- I have at this moment received a most kind
- invitation (eleven days old) from Mr. Southard, president; and a
- like one (ten days old) from Mr. Bryant, president of the Press
- Club. I thank the society cordially for the compliment of these
- invitations, although I am booked elsewhere and cannot come.
- But, oh, I should like to know the name of the Lightning Express
- by which they were forwarded; for I owe a friend a dozen chickens, and
- I believe it will be cheaper to send eggs instead, and let them
- develop on the road.
- Sincerely yours, MARK TWAIN.
-
- I want to tell you of some of my experiences in business, and then I
- will be in a position to lay down one general rule for the guidance of
- those who want to succeed in business. My first effort was about
- twenty-five years ago. I took hold of an invention- I don't know now
- what it was all about, but some one came to me and told me it was a
- good thing, and that there was lots of money in it. He persuaded me to
- invest $15,000, and I lived up to my beliefs by engaging a man to
- develop it. To make a long story short, I sunk $40,000 in it.
- Then I took up the publication of a book. I called in a publisher
- and said to him: "I want you to publish this book along lines which
- I shall lay down. I am the employer, and you are the employee. I am
- going to show them some new kinks in the publishing business. And I
- want you to draw on me for money as you go along," which he did. He
- drew on me for $56,000. Then I asked him to take the book and call
- it off. But he refused to do that.
- My next venture was with a machine for doing something or other. I
- knew less about that than I did about the invention. But I sunk
- $170,000 in the business, and I can't for the life of me recollect
- what it was the machine was to do.
- I was still undismayed. You see, one of the strong points about my
- business life was that I never gave up. I undertook to publish General
- Grant's book, and made $140,000 in six months. My axiom is, to succeed
- in business: avoid my example.
- CARNEGIE THE BENEFACTOR.
-
- At the dinner given in honor of Andrew Carnegie by the Lotos Club,
- March 17, 1909, Mr. Clemens appeared in a white suit from head to
- feet. He wore a white double-breasted coat, white trousers, and
- white shoes. The only relief was a big black cigar, which he
- confidentially informed the company was not from his usual stack
- bought at $3 per barrel.
-
- THE State of Missouri has for its coat of arms a barrel-head with
- two Missourians, one on each side of it, and mark the motto- "United
- We Stand, Divided We Fall." Mr. Carnegie, this evening, has suffered
- from compliments. It is interesting to hear what people will say about
- a man. Why, at the banquet given by this club in my honor, Mr.
- Carnegie had the inspiration for which the club is now honoring him.
- If Dunfermline contributed so much to the United States in
- contributing Mr. Carnegie, what would have happened if all Scotland
- had turned out? These Dunfermline folk have acquired advantages in
- coming to America.
- Doctor McKelway paid the top compliment, the cumulation, when he
- said of Mr. Carnegie: "There is a man who wants to pay more taxes than
- he is charged." Richard Watson Gilder did very well for a poet. He
- advertised his magazine. He spoke of hiring Mr. Carnegie- the next
- thing he will be trying to hire me.
- If I undertook to pay compliments I would do it stronger than any
- others have done it, for what Mr. Carnegie wants are strong
- compliments. Now, the other side of seventy, I have preserved, as my
- chiefest virtue, modesty.
- ON POETRY, VERACITY, AND SUICIDE.
-
- ADDRESS AT A DINNER OF THE MANHATTAN DICKENS FELLOWSHIP,
- NEW YORK CITY, FEBRUARY 7, 1906.
-
- This dinner was in commemoration of the ninety-fourth anniversary of
- the birth of Charles Dickens. On another occasion Mr. Clemens told the
- same story with variations and a different conclusion to the
- University Settlement Society.
-
- I ALWAYS had taken an interest in young people who wanted to
- become poets. I remember I was particularly interested in one
- budding poet when I was a reporter. His name was Butter.
- One day he came to me and said, disconsolately, that he was going to
- commit suicide- he was tired of life, not being able to express his
- thoughts in poetic form. Butter asked me what I thought of the idea.
- I said I would; that it was a good idea. "You can do me a friendly
- turn. You go off in a private place and do it there, and I'll get it
- all. You do it, and I'll do as much for you some time."
- At first he determined to drown himself. Drowning is so nice and
- clean, and writes up so well in a newspaper.
- But things ne'er do go smoothly in weddings, suicides, or
- courtships. Only there at the edge of the water, where Butter was to
- end himself, lay a life-preserver- a big round canvas one, which would
- float after the scrap-iron was soaked out of it.
- Butter wouldn't kill himself with the life-preserver in sight, and
- so I had an idea. I took it to a pawnshop, and soaked it for a
- revolver. The pawnbroker didn't think much of the exchange, but when I
- explained the situation he acquiesced. We went up on top of a high
- building, and this is what happened to the poet:
- He put the revolver to his forehead and blew a tunnel straight
- through his head. The tunnel was about the size of your finger. You
- could look right through it. The job was complete; there was nothing
- in it.
- Well, after that that man never could write prose, but he could
- write poetry. He could write it after he had blown his brains out.
- There is lots of that talent all over the country, but the trouble
- is they don't develop it.
- I am suffering now from the fact that I, who have told the truth a
- good many times in my life, have lately received more letters than
- anybody else urging me to lead a righteous life. I have more friends
- who want to see me develop on a high level than anybody else.
- Young John D. Rockefeller, two weeks ago, taught his Bible class all
- about veracity, and why it was better that everybody should always
- keep a plentiful supply on hand. Some of the letters I have received
- suggest that I ought to attend his class and learn, too. Why, I know
- Mr. Rockefeller, and he is a good fellow. He is competent in many ways
- to teach a Bible class, but when it comes to veracity he is only
- thirty-five years old. I'm seventy years old. I have been familiar
- with veracity twice as long as he.
- And the story about George Washington and his little hatchet has
- also been suggested to me in these letters- in a fugitive way, as if I
- needed some of George Washington and his hatchet in my constitution.
- Why, dear me, they overlook the real point in that story. The point is
- not the one that is usually suggested, and you can readily see that.
- The point is not that George said to his father, "Yes, father, I cut
- down the cheery-tree; I can't tell a lie," but that the little boy-
- only seven years old- should have his sagacity developed under such
- circumstances. He was a boy wise beyond his years. His conduct then
- was a prophecy of later years. Yes, I think he was the most remarkable
- man the country ever produced- up to my time, anyway.
- Now then, little George realized that circumstantial evidence was
- against him. He knew that his father would know from the size of the
- chips that no full-grown hatchet cut that tree down, and that no man
- would have haggled it so. He knew that his father would send around
- the plantation and inquire for a small boy with a hatchet, and he
- had the wisdom to come out and confess it. Now, the idea that his
- father was overjoyed when he told little George that he would rather
- have him cut down a thousand cheery-trees than tell a lie is all
- nonsense. What did he really mean? Why, that he was absolutely
- astonished that he had a son who had the chance to tell a lie and
- didn't.
- I admire old George- if that was his name- for his discernment. He
- knew when he said that his son couldn't tell a lie that he was
- stretching it a good deal. He wouldn't have to go to John D.
- Rockefeller's Bible class to find that out. The way the old George
- Washington story goes down it doesn't do anybody any good. It only
- discourages people who can- tell a lie.
- WELCOME HOME.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE DINNER IN HIS HONOR AT THE
- LOTOS CLUB, NOVEMBER 10, 1900.
-
- In August, 1895, just before sailing for Australia, Mr. Clemens
- issued the following statement:
-
- "It has been reported that I sacrificed, for the benefit of the
- creditors, the property of the publishing firm whose financial
- backer I was, and that I am now lecturing for my own benefit.
- "This is an error. I intend the lectures, as well as the property,
- for the creditors. The law recognizes no mortgage on a man's brains,
- and a merchant who has given up all he has may take advantage of the
- laws of insolvency and may start free again for himself. But I am
- not a business man, and honor is a harder master than the law. It
- cannot compromise for less than one hundred cents on a dollar, and its
- debts are never outlawed.
- "I had a two-thirds interest in the publishing firm whose capital
- I furnished. If the firm had prospered I would have expected to
- collect two-thirds of the profits. As it is, I expect to pay all the
- debts. My partner has no resources, and I do not look for assistance
- to my wife, whose contributions in cash from her own means have nearly
- equalled the claims of all the creditors combined. She has taken
- nothing; on the contrary, she has helped and intends to help me to
- satisfy the obligations due to the rest of the creditors.
- "It is my intention to ask my creditors to accept that as a legal
- discharge, and trust to my honor to pay the other fifty per cent. as
- fast as I can earn it. From my reception thus far on my lecturing
- tour, I am confident that if I live I can pay off the last debt within
- four years.
- "After which, at the age of sixty-four, I can make a fresh and
- unincumbered start in life. I am going to Australia, India, and
- South Africa, and next year I hope to make a tour of the great
- cities of the United States."
-
- I THANK you all out of my heart for this fraternal welcome, and it
- seems almost too fine, almost too magnificent, for a humble Missourian
- such as I am, far from his native haunts on the banks of the
- Mississippi; yet my modesty is in a degree fortified by observing that
- I am not the only Missourian who has been honored here to-night, for I
- see at this very table- here is a Missourian [indicating Mr.
- McKelway], and there is a Missourian [indicating Mr. Depew], and there
- is another Missourian- and Hendrix and Clemens; and last but not
- least, the greatest Missourian of them all- here he sits- Tom Reed,
- who has always concealed his birth till now. And since I have been
- away I know what has been happening in his case: he has deserted
- politics, and now is leading a creditable life. He has reformed, and
- God prosper him; and I judge, by a remark which he made up-stairs
- awhile ago, that he had found a new business that is utterly suited to
- his make and constitution, and all he is doing now is that he is
- around raising the average of personal beauty.
- But I am grateful to the president for the kind words which he has
- said of me, and it is not for me to say whether these praises were
- deserved or not. I prefer to accept them just as they stand, without
- concerning myself with the statistics upon which they have been built,
- but only with that large matter, that essential matter, the
- good-fellowship, the kindliness, the magnanimity, and generosity
- that prompted their utterance. Well, many things have happened since I
- sat here before, and now that I think of it, the president's reference
- to the debts which were left by the bankrupt firm of Charles L.
- Webster & Co. gives me an opportunity to say a word which I very
- much wish to say, not for myself, but for ninety-five men and women
- whom I shall always hold in high esteem and in pleasant remembrance-
- the creditors of that firm. They treated me well; they treated me
- handsomely. There were ninety-six of them, and by not a finger's
- weight did ninety-five of them add to the burden of that time for
- me. Ninety-five out of the ninety-six- they didn't indicate by any
- word or sign that they were anxious about their money. They treated me
- well, and I shall not forget it; I could not forget it if I wanted to.
- Many of them said, "Don't you worry, don't you hurry"; that's what
- they said. Why, if I could have that kind of creditors always, and
- that experience, I would recognize it as a personal loss to be out
- of debt. I owe those ninety-five creditors a debt of homage, and I pay
- it now in such measure as one may pay so fine a debt in mere words.
- Yes, they said that very thing. I was not personally acquainted with
- ten of them, and yet they said, "Don't you worry, and don't you
- hurry." I know that phrase by heart, and if all the other music should
- perish out of the world it would still sing to me. I appreciate
- that; I am glad to say this word; people say so much about me, and
- they forget those creditors. They were handsomer than I was- or Tom
- Reed.
- Oh, you have been doing many things in this time that I have been
- absent; you have done lots of things, some that are well worth
- remembering, too. Now, we have fought a righteous war since I have
- gone, and that is rare in history- a righteous war is so rare that
- it is almost unknown in history; but by the grace of that war we set
- Cuba free, and we joined her to those three or four nations that exist
- on this earth; and we started out to set those poor Filipinos free,
- too, and why, why, why that most righteous purpose of ours has
- apparently miscarried I suppose I never shall know.
- But we have made a most creditable record in China in these days-
- our sound and level-headed administration has made a most creditable
- record over there, and there are some of the Powers that cannot say
- that by any means. The Yellow Terror is threatening this world to-day.
- It is looming vast and ominous on that distant horizon. I do not
- know what is going to be the result of that Yellow Terror, but our
- government has had no hand in evoking it, and let's be happy in that
- and proud of it.
- We have nursed free silver, we watched by its cradle; we have done
- the best we could to raise that child, but those pestiferous
- Republicans have- well, they keep giving it the measles every chance
- they get, and we never shall raise that child. Well, that's no matter-
- there's plenty of other things to do, and we must think of something
- else. Well, we have tried a President four years, criticised him and
- found fault with him the whole time, and turned around a day or two
- ago with votes enough to spare to elect another. O consistency!
- consistency! thy name- I don't know what thy name is- Thompson will
- do- any name will do- but you see there is the fact, there is the
- consistency. Then we have tried for governor an illustrious Rough
- Rider, and we liked him so much in that great office that now we
- have made him Vice-President- not in order that that office shall give
- him distinction, but that he may confer distinction upon that
- office. And it's needed, too- it's needed. And now, for a while
- anyway, we shall not be stammering and embarrassed when a stranger
- asks us, "What is the name of the Vice-President?" This one is
- known; this one is pretty well known, pretty widely known, and in some
- quarters favorably. I am not accustomed to dealing in these fulsome
- compliments, and I am probably overdoing it a little; but- well, my
- old affectionate admiration for Governor Roosevelt has probably
- betrayed me into the complimentary excess; but I know him, and you
- know him; and if you give him rope enough- I mean if- oh yes, he
- will justify that compliment; leave it just as it is. And now we
- have put in his place Mr. Odell, another Rough Rider, I suppose; all
- the fat things go to that profession now. Why, I could have been a
- Rough Rider myself if I had known that this political Klondike was
- going to open up, and I would have been a Rough Rider if I could
- have gone to war on an automobile- but not on a horse! No, I know
- the horse too well; I have known the horse in war and in peace, and
- there is no place where a horse is comfortable. The horse has too many
- caprices, and he is too much given to initiative. He invents too
- many new ideas. No, I don't want anything to do with a horse.
- And then we have taken Chauncey Depew out of a useful and active
- life and made him a Senator- embalmed him, corked him up. And I am not
- grieving. That man has said many a true thing about me in his time,
- and I always said something would happen to him. Look at that
- [pointing to Mr. Depew] gilded mummy! He has made my life a sorrow
- to me at many a banquet on both sides of the ocean, and now he has got
- it. Perish the hand that pulls that cork!
- All these things have happened, all these things have come to
- pass, while I have been away, and it just shows how little a Mugwump
- can be missed in a cold, unfeeling world, even when he is the last one
- that is left- a GRAND OLD PARTY all by himself. And there is another
- thing that has happened, perhaps the most imposing event of them
- all: the institution called the Daughters of the Crown- the
- Daughters of the Royal Crown- has established itself and gone into
- business. Now, there's an American idea for you; there's an idea
- born of God knows what kind of specialized insanity, but not softening
- of the brain- you cannot soften a thing that doesn't exist- the
- Daughters of the Royal Crown! Nobody eligible but American descendants
- of Charles II. Dear me, how the fancy product of that old harem
- still holds out!
- Well, I am truly glad to foregather with you again, and partake of
- the bread and salt of this hospitable house once more. Seven years
- ago, when I was your guest here, when I was old and despondent, you
- gave me the grip and the word that lift a man up and make him glad
- to be alive; and now I come back from my exile young again, fresh
- and alive, and ready to begin life once more, and your welcome puts
- the finishing touch .upon my restored youth and makes it real to me,
- and not a gracious dream that must vanish with the morning. I thank
- you.
- AN UNDELIVERED SPEECH.
-
- The steamship St. Paul was to have been launched from Cramp's
- shipyard in Philadelphia on March 25, 1895. After the launching a
- luncheon was to have been given, at which Mr. Clemens was to make a
- speech. Just before the final word was given a reporter asked Mr.
- Clemens for a copy of his speech to be delivered at the luncheon. To
- facilitate the work of the reporter he loaned him a typewritten copy
- of the speech. It happened, however, that when the blocks were knocked
- away the big ship refused to budge, and no amount of labor could
- move her an inch. She had stuck fast upon the ways. As a result, the
- launching was postponed for a week or two; but in the mean time Mr.
- Clemens had gone to Europe. Years after a reporter called on Mr.
- Clemens and submitted the manuscript of the speech, which was as
- follows:
-
- DAY after to-morrow I sail for England in a ship of this line, the
- Paris. It will be my fourteenth crossing in three years and a half.
- Therefore, my presence here, as you see, is quite natural, quite
- commercial. I am interested in ships. They interest me more now than
- hotels do. When a new ship is launched I feel a desire to go and see
- if she will be good quarters for me to live in, particularly if she
- belongs to this line, for it is by this line that I have done most
- of my ferrying.
- People wonder why I go so much. Well, I go partly for my health,
- partly to familiarize myself with the road. I have gone over the
- same road so many times now that I know all the whales that belong
- along the route, and latterly it is an embarrassment to me to meet
- them, for they do not look glad to see me, but annoyed, and they
- seem to say: "Here is this old derelict again."
- Earlier in life this would have pained me and made me ashamed, but I
- am older now, and when I am behaving myself, and doing right, I do not
- care for a whale's opinion about me. When we are young we generally
- estimate an opinion by the size of the person that holds it, but later
- we find that that is an uncertain rule, for we realize that there
- are times when a hornet's opinion disturbs us more than an emperor's.
- I do not mean that I care nothing at all for a whale's opinion,
- for that would be going to too great a length. Of course, it is better
- to have the good opinion of a whale than his disapproval; but my
- position is that if you cannot have a whale's good opinion, except
- at some sacrifice of principle or personal dignity, it is better to
- try to live without it. That is my idea about whales.
- Yes, I have gone over that same route so often that I know my way
- without a compass, just by the waves. I know all the large waves and a
- good many of the small ones. Also the sunsets. I know every sunset and
- where it belongs just by its color. Necessarily, then, I do not make
- the passage now for scenery. That is all gone by.
- What I prize most is safety, and in the second place swift transit
- and handiness. These are best furnished by the American line, whose
- watertight compartments have no passage through them, no doors to be
- left open, and consequently no way for water to get from one of them
- to another in time of collision. If you nullify the peril which
- collisions threaten you with, you nullify the only very serious
- peril which attends voyages in the great liners of our day, and
- makes voyaging safer than staying at home.
- When the Paris was half-torn to pieces some years ago, enough of the
- Atlantic ebbed and flowed through one end of her, during her long
- agony, to sink the fleets of the world if distributed among them;
- but she floated in perfect safety, and no life was lost. In time of
- collision the rock of Gibraltar is not safer than the Paris and
- other great ships of this line. This seems to be the only great line
- in the world that takes a passenger from metropolis to metropolis
- without the intervention of tugs and barges or bridges- takes him
- through without breaking bulk, so to speak.
- On the English side he lands at a dock; on the dock a special
- train is waiting; in an hour and three-quarters he is in London.
- Nothing could be handier. If your journey were from a sand-pit on
- our side to a lighthouse on the other, you could make it quicker by
- other lines, but that is not the case. The journey is from the city of
- New York to the city of London, and no line can do that journey
- quicker than this one, nor anywhere near as conveniently and
- handily. And when the passenger lands on our side he lands on the
- American side of the river, not in the provinces. As a very learned
- man said on the last voyage (he is head quartermaster of the New
- York land garboard streak of the middle watch): "When we land a
- passenger on the American side there's nothing betwix him and his
- hotel but hell and the hackman."
- I am glad, with you and the nation, to welcome the new ship. She
- is another pride, another consolation, for a great country whose
- mighty fleets have all vanished, and which has almost forgotten what
- it is to fly its flag to sea. I am not sure as to which St. Paul she
- is named for. Some think it is the one that is on the upper
- Mississippi, but the head quartermaster told me it was the one that
- killed Goliath. But it is not important. No matter which it is, let us
- give her hearty welcome and godspeed.
- SIXTY-SEVENTH BIRTHDAY.
-
- AT THE METROPOLITAN CLUB, NEW YORK, NOVEMBER 28, 1902.
-
- Address at a dinner given in honor of Mr. Clemens by Colonel Harvey,
- President of Harper & Brothers.
-
- I THINK I ought to be allowed to talk as long as I want to, for
- the reason that I have cancelled all my winter's engagements of
- every kind, for good and sufficient reasons, and am making no new
- engagements for this winter, and, therefore, this is the only chance I
- shall have to disembowel my skull for a year- close the mouth in
- that portrait for a year. I want to offer thanks and homage to the
- chairman for this innovation which he has introduced here, which is an
- improvement, as I consider it, on the old-fashioned style of
- conducting occasions like this. That was bad- that was a bad, bad, bad
- arrangement. Under that old custom the chairman got up and made a
- speech, he introduced the prisoner at the bar, and covered him all
- over with compliments, nothing but compliments, not a thing but
- compliments, never a slur, and sat down and left that man to get up
- and talk without a text. You cannot talk on compliments; that is not a
- text. No modest person, and I was born one, can talk on compliments. A
- man gets up and is filled to the eyes with happy emotions, but his
- tongue is tied; he has nothing to say; he is in the condition of
- Doctor Rice's friend who came home drunk and explained it to his wife,
- and his wife said to him, "John, when you have drunk all the whiskey
- you want, you ought to ask for sarsaparilla." He said, "Yes, but
- when I have drunk all the whiskey I want I can't say sarsaparilla."
- And so I think it is much better to leave a man unmolested until the
- testimony and pleadings are all in. Otherwise he is dumb- he is at the
- sarsaparilla stage.
- Before I get to the higgledy-piggledy point, as Mr. Howells
- suggested I do, I want to thank you, gentlemen, for this very high
- honor you are doing me, and I am quite competent to estimate it at its
- value. I see around me captains of all the illustrious industries,
- most distinguished men; there are more than fifty here, and I
- believe I know thirty-nine of them well. I could probably borrow money
- from- from the others, anyway. It is a proud thing to me, indeed, to
- see such a distinguished company gather here on such an occasion as
- this, when there is no foreign prince to be fated- when you have
- come here not to do honor to hereditary privilege and ancient lineage,
- but to do reverence to mere moral excellence and elemental veracity-
- and, dear me, how old it seems to make me! I look around me and I
- see three or four persons I have known so many, many years. I have
- known Mr. Secretary Hay- John Hay, as the nation and the rest of his
- friends love to call him- I have known John Hay and Tom Reed and the
- Reverend Twichell close upon thirty-six years. Close upon thirty-six
- years I have known those venerable men. I have known Mr. Howells
- nearly thirty-four years, and I knew Chauncey Depew before he could
- walk straight, and before he learned to tell the truth. Twenty-seven
- years ago I heard him make the most noble and eloquent and beautiful
- speech that has ever fallen from even his capable lips. Tom Reed
- said that my principal defect was inaccuracy of statement. Well,
- suppose that that is true. What's the use of telling the truth all the
- time? I never tell the truth about Tom Reed- but that is his defect,
- truth; he speaks the truth always. Tom Reed has a good heart, and he
- has a good intellect, but he hasn't any judgment. Why, when Tom Reed
- was invited to lecture to the Ladies' Society for the Procreation or
- Procrastination, or something, of morals, I don't know what it was-
- advancement, I suppose, of pure morals- he had the immortal
- indiscretion to begin by saying that some of us can't be optimists,
- but by judiciously utilizing the opportunities that Providence puts in
- our way we can all be bigamists. You perceive his limitations.
- Anything he has in his mind he states, if he thinks it is true.
- Well, that was true, but that was no place to say it- so they fired
- him out.
- A lot of accounts have been settled here tonight for me; I have held
- grudges against some of these people, but they have all been wiped out
- by the very handsome compliments that have been paid me. Even Wayne
- MacVeagh- I have had a grudge against him many years. The first time I
- saw Wayne MacVeagh was at a private dinner-party at Charles A. Dana's,
- and when I got there he was clattering along, and I tried to get a
- word in here and there; but you know what Wayne MacVeagh is when he is
- started, and I could not get in five words to his one- or one word
- to his five. I struggled along and struggled along, and- well, I
- wanted to tell and I was trying to tell a dream I had had the night
- before, and it was a remarkable dream, a dream worth people's while to
- listen to, a dream recounting Sam Jones the revivalist's reception
- in heaven. I was on a train, and was approaching the celestial
- way-station- I had a through ticket- and I noticed a man sitting
- alongside of me asleep, and he had his ticket in his hat. He was the
- remains of the Archbishop of Canterbury; I recognized him by his
- photograph. I had nothing against him, so I took his ticket and let
- him have mine. He didn't object- he wasn't in a condition to object-
- and presently when the train stopped at the heavenly station- well,
- I got off, and he went on by request- but there they all were, the
- angels, you know, millions of them, every one with a torch; they had
- arranged for a torch-light procession; they were expecting the
- Archbishop, and when I got off they started to raise a shout, but it
- didn't materialize. I don't know whether they were disappointed. I
- suppose they had a lot of superstitious ideas about the Archbishop and
- what he should look like, and I didn't fill the bill, and I was trying
- to explain to Saint Peter, and was doing it in the German tongue,
- because I didn't want to be too explicit. Well, I found it was no use,
- I couldn't get along, for Wayne MacVeagh was occupying the whole
- place, and I said to Mr. Dana, "What is the matter with that man?
- Who is that man with the long tongue? What's the trouble with him,
- that long, lank cadaver, old oil-derrick out of a job- who is that?"
- "Well, now," Mr. Dana said, "you don't want to meddle with him; you
- had better keep quiet; just keep quiet, because that's a bad man.
- Talk! He was born to talk. Don't let him get out with you; he'll
- skin you." I said, "I have been skinned, skinned, and skinned for
- years, there is nothing left." He said, "Oh, you'll find there is;
- that man is the very seed and inspiration of that proverb which
- says, 'No matter how close you skin an onion, a clever man can
- always peel it again.'" Well, I reflected and I quieted down. That
- would never occur to Tom Reed. He's got no discretion. Well,
- MacVeagh is just the same man; he hasn't changed a bit in all those
- years; he has been peeling Mr. Mitchell lately. That's the kind of man
- he is.
- Mr. Howells- that poem of his is admirable; that's the way to
- treat a person. Howells has a peculiar gift for seeing the merits of
- people, and he has always exhibited them in my favor. Howells has
- never written anything about me that I couldn't read six or seven
- times a day; he is always just and always fair; he has written more
- appreciatively of me than any one in this world, and published it in
- the North American Review. He did me the justice to say that my
- intentions- he italicized that- that my intentions were always good,
- that I wounded people's conventions rather than their convictions.
- Now, I wouldn't want anything handsomer than that said of me. I
- would rather wait, with anything harsh I might have to say, till the
- convictions become conventions. Bangs has traced me all the way
- down. He can't find that honest man, but I will look for him in the
- looking-glass when I get home. It was intimated by the Colonel that it
- is New England that makes New York and builds up this country and
- makes it great, overlooking the fact that there's a lot of people here
- who came from elsewhere, like John Hay from away out West, and Howells
- from Ohio, and St. Clair McKelway and me from Missouri, and we are
- doing what we can to build up New York a little- elevate it. Why, when
- I was living in that village of Hannibal, Missouri, on the banks of
- the Mississippi, and Hay up in the town of Warsaw, also on the banks
- of the Mississippi River- it is an emotional bit of the Mississippi,
- and when it is low water you have to climb up to it on a ladder, and
- when it floods you have to hunt for it with a deep-sea lead- but it is
- a great and beautiful country. In that old time it was a paradise
- for simplicity- it was a simple, simple life, cheap but comfortable,
- and full of sweetness, and there was nothing of this rage of modern
- civilization there at all. It was a delectable land. I went out
- there last June, and I met in that town of Hannibal a schoolmate of
- mine, John Briggs, whom I had not seen for more than fifty years. I
- tell you, that was a meeting! That pal whom I had known as a little
- boy long ago, and knew now as a stately man three or four inches
- over six feet and browned by exposure to many climes, he was back
- there to see that old place again. We spent a whole afternoon going
- about here and there and yonder, and hunting up the scenes and talking
- of the crimes which we had committed so long ago. It was a
- heartbreaking delight, full of pathos, laughter, and tears, all
- mixed together; and we called the roll of the boys and girls that we
- picnicked and sweethearted with so many years ago, and there were
- hardly half a dozen of them left; the rest were in their graves; and
- we went up there on the summit of that hill, a treasured place in my
- memory, the summit of Holiday's Hill, and looked out again over that
- magnificent panorama of the Mississippi River, sweeping along league
- after league, a level green paradise on one side, and retreating capes
- and promontories as far as you could see on the other, fading away
- in the soft, rich lights of the remote distance. I recognized then
- that I was seeing now the most enchanting river view the planet
- could furnish. I never knew it when I was a boy; it took an educated
- eye that had travelled over the globe to know and appreciate it; and
- John said, "Can you point out the place where Bear Creek used to be
- before the railroad came?" I said, "Yes, it ran along yonder." "And
- can you point out the swimming-hole?" "Yes, out there." And he said,
- "Can you point out the place where we stole the skiff?" Well, I didn't
- know which one he meant. Such a wilderness of events had intervened
- since that day, more than fifty years ago, it took me more than five
- minutes to call back that little incident, and then I did call it
- back; it was a white skiff, and we painted it red to allay
- suspicion. And the saddest, saddest man came along- a stranger he was-
- and he looked that red skiff over so pathetically, and he said: "Well,
- if it weren't for the complexion I'd know whose skiff that was." He
- said it in that pleading way, you know, that appeals for sympathy
- and suggestion; we were full of sympathy for him, but we weren't in
- any condition to offer suggestions. I can see him yet as he turned
- away with that same sad look on his face and vanished out of history
- forever. I wonder what became of that man. I know what became of the
- skiff. Well, it was a beautiful life, a lovely life. There was no
- crime. Merely little things like pillaging orchards and
- watermelon-patches and breaking the Sabbath- we didn't break the
- Sabbath often enough to signify- once a week perhaps. But we were good
- boys, good Presbyterian boys, all Presbyterian boys, and loyal and all
- that; anyway, we were good Presbyterian boys when the weather was
- doubtful; when it was fair, we did wander a little from the fold.
- Look at John Hay and me. There we were in obscurity, and look
- where we are now. Consider the ladder which he has climbed, the
- illustrious vocations he has served- and vocations is the right
- word; he has in all those vocations acquitted himself with high credit
- and honor to his country and to the mother that bore him. Scholar,
- soldier, diplomat, poet, historian- now, see where we are. He is
- Secretary of State and I am a gentleman. It could not happen in any
- other country. Our institutions give men the positions that of right
- belong to them through merit; all you men have won your places, not by
- heredities, and not by family influence or extraneous help, but only
- by the natural gifts God gave you at your birth, made effective by
- your own energies; this is the country to live in.
- Now, there is one invisible guest here. A part of me is present; the
- larger part, the better part, is yonder at her home; that is my
- wife, and she has a good many personal friends here, and I think it
- won't distress any one of them to know that, although she is going
- to be confined to that bed for many months to come from that nervous
- prostration, there is not any danger and she is coming along very
- well- and I think it quite appropriate that I should speak of her. I
- knew her for the first time just in the same year that I first knew
- John Hay and Tom Reed and Mr. Twichell- thirty-six years ago- and
- she has been the best friend I have ever had, and that is saying a
- good deal; she has reared me she and Twichell together- and what I
- am I owe to them. Twichell- why, it is such a pleasure to look upon
- Twichell's face! For five-and-twenty years I was under the Rev. Mr.
- Twichell's tuition, I was in his pastorate, occupying a pew in his
- church, and held him in due reverence. That man is full of all the
- graces that go to make a person companionable and beloved; and
- wherever Twichell goes to start a church the people flock there to buy
- the land; they find real estate goes up all around the spot, and the
- envious and the thoughtful always try to get Twichell to move to their
- neighborhood and start a church; and wherever you see him go you can
- go and buy land there with confidence, feeling sure that there will be
- a double price for you before very long. I am not saying this to
- flatter Mr. Twichell; it is the fact. Many and many a time I have
- attended the annual sale in his church, and bought up all the pews
- on a margin- and it would have been better for me spiritually and
- financially if I had stayed under his wing.
- I have tried to do good in this world, and it is marvellous in how
- many different ways I have done good, and it is comfortable to
- reflect- now, there's Mr. Rogers- just out of the affection I bear
- that man many a time I have given him points in finance that he had
- never thought of- and if he could lay aside envy, prejudice, and
- superstition, and utilize those ideas in his business, it would make a
- difference in his bank account.
- Well, I like the poetry. I like all the speeches and the poetry,
- too. I liked Doctor Van Dyke's poem. I wish I could return thanks in
- proper measure to you, gentlemen, who have spoken and violated your
- feelings to pay me compliments; some were merited and some you
- overlooked, it is true; and Colonel Harvey did slander every one of
- you, and put things into my mouth that I never said, never thought
- of at all.
- And now, my wife and I, out of our single heart, return you our
- deepest and most grateful thanks, and- yesterday was her birthday.
- TO THE WHITEFRIARS.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE DINNER GIVEN BY THE WHITEFRIARS
- CLUB IN HONOR OF MR. CLEMENS,
- LONDON, JUNE 20, 1899.
-
- The Whitefriars Club was founded by Dr. Samuel Johnson, and Mr.
- Clemens was made an honorary member in 1874. The members are
- representative of literary and journalistic London. The toast of
- "Our Guest" was proposed by Louis F. Austin, of the Illustrated London
- News, and in the course of some humorous remarks he referred to the
- vow and to the imaginary woes of the "Friars," as the members of the
- club style themselves.
-
- MR. CHAIRMAN AND BRETHREN OF THE VOW- in whatever the vow is; for
- although I have been a member of this club for five-and-twenty
- years, I don't know any more about what that vow is than Mr. Austin
- seems to. But whatever the vow is, I don't care what it is. I have
- made a thousand vows.
- There is no pleasure comparable to making a vow in the presence of
- one who appreciates that vow, in the presence of men who honor and
- appreciate you for making the vow, and men who admire you for making
- the vow.
- There is only one pleasure higher than that, and that is to get
- outside and break the vow. A vow is always a pledge of some kind or
- other for the protection of your own morals and principles or somebody
- else's, and generally, by the irony of fate, it is for the
- protection of your own morals.
- Hence we have pledges that make us eschew tobacco or wine, and while
- you are taking the pledge there is a holy influence about that makes
- you feel you are reformed, and that you can never be so happy again in
- this world until- you get outside and take a drink.
- I had forgotten that I was a member of this club- it is so long ago.
- But now I remember that I was here five-and-twenty years ago, and that
- I was then at a dinner of the Whitefriars Club, and it was in those
- old days when you had just made two great finds. All London was
- talking about nothing else than that they had found Livingstone, and
- that the lost Sir Roger Tichborne had been found- and they were trying
- him for it.
- And at the dinner, Chairman- (I do not know who he was)- failed to
- come to time. The gentleman who had been appointed to pay me the
- customary compliments and to introduce me forgot the compliments,
- and did not know what they were.
- And George Augustus Sala came in at the last moment, just when I was
- about to go without compliments altogether. And that man was a
- gifted man. They just called on him instantaneously, while he was
- going to sit down, to introduce the stranger, and Sala made one of
- those marvellous speeches which he was capable of making. I think no
- man talked so fast as Sala did. One did not need wine while he was
- making a speech. The rapidity of his utterance made a man drunk in a
- minute. An incomparable speech was that, an impromptu speech, and an
- impromptu speech is a seldom thing, and he did it so well.
- He went into the whole history of the United States, and made it
- entirely new to me. He filled it with episodes and incidents that
- Washington never heard of, and he did it so convincingly that although
- I knew none of it had happened, from that day to this I do not know
- any history but Sala's.
- I do not know anything so sad as a dinner where you are going to get
- up and say something by-and-by, and you do not know what it is. You
- sit and wonder and wonder what the gentleman is going to say who is
- going to introduce you. You know that if he says something severe,
- that if he will deride you, or traduce you, or do anything of that
- kind, he will furnish you with a text, because anybody can get up
- and talk against that.
- Anybody can get up and straighten out his character. But when a
- gentleman gets up and merely tells the truth about you, what can you
- do?
- Mr. Austin has done well. He has supplied so many texts that I
- will have to drop out a lot of them, and that is about as difficult as
- when you do not have any text at all. Now, he made a beautiful and
- smooth speech without any difficulty at all, and I could have done
- that if I had gone on with the schooling with which I began. I see
- here a gentleman on my left who was my master in the art of oratory
- more than twenty-five years ago.
- When I look upon the inspiring face of Mr. Depew, it carries me a
- long way back. An old and valued friend of mine is he, and I saw his
- career as it came along, and it has reached pretty well up to now,
- when he, by another miscarriage of justice, is a United States
- Senator. But those were delightful days when I was taking lessons in
- oratory.
- My other master- the Ambassador- is not here yet. Under those two
- gentlemen I learned to make after-dinner speeches, and it was
- charming.
- You know the New England dinner is the great occasion on the other
- side of the water. It is held every year to celebrate the landing of
- the Pilgrims. Those Pilgrims were a lot of people who were not
- needed in England, and you know they had great rivalry, and they
- were persuaded to go elsewhere, and they chartered a ship called
- Mayflower and set sail, and I have heard it said that they pumped
- the Atlantic Ocean through that ship sixteen times.
- They fell in over there with the Dutch from Rotterdam, Amsterdam,
- and a lot of other places with profane names, and it is from that gang
- that Mr. Depew is descended.
- On the other hand, Mr. Choate is descended from those Puritans who
- landed on a bitter night in December. Every year those people used
- to meet at a great banquet in New York, and those masters of mind in
- oratory had to make speeches. It was Doctor Depew's business to get up
- there and apologize for the Dutch, and Mr. Choate had to get up
- later and explain the crimes of the Puritans, and grand, beautiful
- times we used to have.
- It is curious that after that long lapse of time I meet the
- Whitefriars again, some looking as young and fresh as in the old days,
- others showing a certain amount of wear and tear, and here, after
- all this time, I find one of the masters of oratory and the others
- named in the list.
- And here we three meet again as exiles on one pretext or another,
- and you will notice that while we are absent there is a pleasing
- tranquillity in America- a building up of public confidence. We are
- doing the best we can for our country. I think we have spent our lives
- in serving our country, and we never serve it to greater advantage
- than when we get out of it.
- But impromptu speaking- that is what I was trying to learn. That
- is a difficult thing. I used to do it in this way. I used to begin
- about a week ahead, and write out my impromptu speech and get it by
- heart. Then I brought it to the New England dinner printed on a
- piece of paper in my pocket, so that I could pass it to the
- reporters all cut and dried, and in order to do an impromptu speech as
- it should be done you have to indicate the places for pauses and
- hesitations. I put them all in it. And then you want the applause in
- the right places.
- When I got to the place where it should come in, if it did not
- come in I did not care, but I had it marked in the paper. And these
- masters of mind used to wonder why it was my speech came out in the
- morning in the first person, while theirs went through the butchery of
- synopsis.
- I do that kind of speech (I mean an offhand speech), and do it well,
- and make no mistake in such a way to deceive the audience completely
- and make that audience believe it is an impromptu speech- that is art.
- I was frightened out of it at last by an experience of Doctor Hayes.
- He was a sort of Nansen of that day. He had been to the North Pole,
- and it made him celebrated. He had even seen the polar bear climb
- the pole.
- He had made one of those magnificent voyages such as Nansen made,
- and in those days when a man did anything which greatly
- distinguished him for the moment he had to come on to the lecture
- platform and tell all about it.
- Doctor Hayes was a great, magnificent creature like Nansen, superbly
- built. He was to appear in Boston. He wrote his lecture out, and it
- was his purpose to read it from manuscript; but in an evil hour he
- concluded that it would be a good thing to preface it with something
- rather handsome, poetical, and beautiful that he could get off by
- heart and deliver as if it were the thought of the moment.
- He had not had my experience, and could not do that. He came on
- the platform, held his manuscript down, and began with a beautiful
- piece of oratory. He spoke something like this:
- "When a lonely human being, a pigmy in the midst of the architecture
- of nature, stands solitary on those icy waters and looks abroad to the
- horizon and sees mighty castles and temples of eternal ice raising
- up their pinnacles tipped by the pencil of the departing sun-"
- Here a man came across the platform and touched him on the shoulder,
- and said: "One minute." And then to the audience:
- "Is Mrs. John Smith in the house? Her husband has slipped on the ice
- and broken his leg."
- And you could see the Mrs. John Smiths get up everywhere and drift
- out of the house, and it made great gaps everywhere. Then Doctor Hayes
- began again: "When a lonely man, a pigmy in the architecture-" The
- janitor came in again and shouted: "It is not Mrs. John Smith! It is
- Mrs. John Jones!"
- Then all the Mrs. Jones got up and left. Once more the speaker
- started, and was in the midst of the sentence when he was
- interrupted again, and the result was that the lecture was not
- delivered. But the lecturer interviewed the janitor afterward in a
- private room, and of the fragments of the janitor they took "twelve
- basketsful."
- Now, I don't want to sit down just in this way. I have been
- talking with so much levity that I have said no serious thing, and you
- are really no better or wiser, although Robert Buchanan has
- suggested that I am a person who deals in wisdom. I have said
- nothing which would make you better than when you came here.
- I should be sorry to sit down without having said one serious word
- which you can carry home and relate to your children and the old
- people who are not able to get away.
- And this is just a little maxim which has saved me from many a
- difficulty and many a disaster, and in times of tribulation and
- uncertainty has come to my rescue, as it shall to yours if you observe
- it as I do day and night.
- I always use it in an emergency, and you can take it home as a
- legacy from me, and it is: "When in doubt, tell the truth."
- THE ASCOT GOLD CUP.
-
- The news of Mr. Clemens's arrival in England in June, 1907, was
- announced in the papers with big headlines. Immediately following
- the announcement was the news- also with big headlines- that the Ascot
- Gold Cup had been stolen the same day. The combination, MARK TWAIN
- ARRIVES- ASCOT CUP STOLEN, amused the public. The Lord Mayor of London
- gave a banquet at the Mansion House in honor of Mr. Clemens.
-
- I DO assure you that I am not so dishonest as I look. I have been so
- busy trying to rehabilitate my honor about that Ascot Cup that I
- have had no time to prepare a speech.
- I was not so honest in former days as I am now, but I have always
- been reasonably honest. Well, you know how a man is influenced by
- his surroundings. Once upon a time I went to a public meeting where
- the oratory of a charitable worker so worked on my feelings that, in
- common with others, I would have dropped something substantial in
- the hat- if it had come round at that moment.
- The speaker had the power of putting those vivid pictures before
- one. We were all affected. That was the moment for the hat. I would
- have put two hundred dollars in. Before he had finished I could have
- put in four hundred dollars. I felt I could have filled up a blank
- check- with somebody else's name- and dropped it in.
- Well, now, another speaker got up, and in fifteen minutes damped
- my spirit; and during the speech of the third speaker all my
- enthusiasm went away. When at last the hat came round I dropped in ten
- cents- and took out twenty-five.
- I came over here to get the honorary degree from Oxford, and I would
- have encompassed the seven seas for an honor like that- the greatest
- honor that has ever fallen to my share. I am grateful to Oxford for
- conferring that honor upon me, and I am sure my country appreciates
- it, because first and foremost it is an honor to my country.
- And now I am going home again across the sea. I am in spirit young
- but in the flesh old, so that it is unlikely that when I go away I
- shall ever see England again. But I shall go with the recollection
- of the generous and kindly welcome I have had.
- I suppose I must say "Good-bye." I say it not with my lips only, but
- from the heart.
- THE SAVAGE CLUB DINNER.
-
- A portrait of Mr. Clemens, signed by all the members of the club
- attending the dinner, was presented to him, July 6, 1907, and in
- submitting the toast "The Health of Mark Twain" Mr. J. Scott Stokes
- recalled the fact that he had read parts of Doctor Clemens's works
- to Harold Frederic during Frederic's last illness.
-
- MR. CHAIRMAN AND FELLOW-SAVAGES,- I am very glad indeed to have that
- portrait. I think it is the best one that I have ever had, and there
- have been opportunities before to get a good photograph. I have sat to
- photographers twenty-two times to-day. Those sittings added to those
- that have preceded them since I have been in Europe- if we average
- at that rate- must have numbered one hundred to two hundred
- sittings. Out of all those there ought to be some good photographs.
- This is the best I have had, and I am glad to have your honored
- names on it. I did not know Harold Frederic personally, but I have
- heard a great deal about him, and nothing that was not pleasant and
- nothing except such things as lead a man to honor another man and to
- love him. I consider that it is a misfortune of mine that I have never
- had the luck to meet him, and if any book of mine read to him in his
- last hours made those hours easier for him and more comfortable, I
- am very glad and proud of that. I call to mind such a case many
- years ago of an English authoress, well known in her day, who wrote
- such beautiful child tales, touching and lovely in every possible way.
- In a little biographical sketch of her I found that her last hours
- were spent partly in reading a book of mine, until she was no longer
- able to read. That has always remained in my mind, and I have always
- cherished it as one of the good things of my life. I had read what she
- had written, and had loved her for what she had done.
- Stanley apparently carried a book of mine feloniously away to
- Africa, and I have not a doubt that it had a noble and uplifting
- influence there in the wilds of Africa- because on his previous
- journeys he never carried anything to read except Shakespeare and
- the Bible. I did not know of that circumstance. I did not know that he
- had carried a book of mine. I only noticed that when he came back he
- was a reformed man. I knew Stanley very well in those old days.
- Stanley was the first man who ever reported a lecture of mine, and
- that was in St. Louis. When I was down there the next time to give the
- same lecture I was told to give them something fresh, as they had read
- that in the papers. I met Stanley here when he came back from that
- first expedition of his which closed with the finding of
- Livingstone. You remember how he would break out at the meetings of
- the British Association, and find fault with what people said, because
- Stanley had notions of his own, and could not contain them. They had
- to come out or break him up- and so he would go round and address
- geographical societies. He was always on the war-path in those days,
- and people always had to have Stanley contradicting their geography
- for them and improving it. But he always came back and sat drinking
- beer with me in the hotel up to two in the morning, and he was then
- one of the most civilized human beings that ever was.
- I saw in a newspaper this evening a reference to an interview
- which appeared in one of the papers the other day, in which the
- interviewer said that I characterized Mr. Birrell's speech the other
- day at the Pilgrims' Club as "bully." Now, if you will excuse me, I
- never use slang to an interviewer or anybody else. That distresses me.
- Whatever I said about Mr. Birrell's speech was said in English, as
- good English as anybody uses. If I could not describe Mr. Birrell's
- delightful speech without using slang I would not describe it at
- all. I would close my mouth and keep it closed, much as it would
- discomfort me.
- Now that comes of interviewing a man in the first person, which is
- an altogether wrong way to interview him. It is entirely wrong because
- none of you, I, or anybody else, could interview a man- could listen
- to a man talking any length of time and then go off and reproduce that
- talk in the first person. It can't be done. What results is merely
- that the interviewer gives the substance of what is said and puts it
- in his own language and puts it in your mouth. It will always be
- either better language than you use or worse, and in my case it is
- always worse. I have a great respect for the English language. I am
- one of its supporters, its promoters, its elevators. I don't degrade
- it. A slip of the tongue would be the most that you would get from me.
- I have always tried hard and faithfully to improve my English and
- never to degrade it. I always try to use the best English to
- describe what I think and what I feel, or what I don't feel and what I
- don't think.
- I am not one of those who in expressing opinions confine
- themselves to facts. I don't know anything that mars good literature
- so completely as too much truth. Facts contain a deal of poetry, but
- you can't use too many of them without damaging your literature. I
- love all literature, and as long as I am a doctor of literature- I
- have suggested to you for twenty years I have been diligently trying
- to improve my own literature, and now, by virtue of the University
- of Oxford, I mean to doctor everybody else's.
- Now I think I ought to apologize for my clothes. At home I venture
- things that I am not permitted by my family to venture in foreign
- parts. I was instructed before I left home and ordered to refrain from
- white clothes in England. I meant to keep that command fair and clean,
- and I would have done it if I had been in the habit of obeying
- instructions, but I can't invent a new process in life right away. I
- have not had white clothes on since I crossed the ocean until now.
- In these three or four weeks I have grown so tired of gray and black
- that you have earned my gratitude in permitting me to come as I
- have. I wear white clothes in the depth of winter in my home, but I
- don't go out in the streets in them. I don't go out to attract too
- much attention. I like to attract some, and always I would like to
- be dressed so that I may, be more conspicuous than anybody else.
- If I had been an ancient Briton, I would not have contented myself
- with blue paint, but I would have bankrupted the rainbow. I so enjoy
- gay clothes in which women clothe themselves that it always grieves me
- when I go to the opera to see that, while women look like a
- flower-bed, the men are a few gray stumps among them in their black
- evening dress. These are two or three reasons why I wish to wear white
- clothes. When I find myself in assemblies like this, with everybody in
- black clothes, I know I possess something that is superior to
- everybody else's. Clothes are never clean. You don't know whether they
- are clean or not, because you can't see.
- Here or anywhere you must scour your head every two or three days or
- it is full of grit. Your clothes must collect just as much dirt as
- your hair. If you wear white clothes you are clean, and your
- cleaning bill gets so heavy that you have to take care. I am proud
- to say that I can wear a white suit of clothes without a blemish for
- three days. If you need any further instruction in the matter of
- clothes I shall be glad to give it to you. I hope I have convinced
- some of you that it is just as well to wear white clothes as any other
- kind. I do not want to boast. I only want to make you understand
- that you are not clean.
- As to age, the fact that I am nearly seventy-two years old does
- not clearly indicate how old I am, because part of every day- it is
- with me as with you- you try to describe your age, and you cannot do
- it. Sometimes you are only fifteen; sometimes you are twenty-five.
- It is very seldom in a day that I am seventy-two years old. I am older
- now sometimes than I was when I used to rob orchards; a thing which
- I would not do today- if the orchards were watched. I am so glad to be
- here to-night. I am so glad to renew with the Savages that now ancient
- time when I first sat with a company of this club in London in 1872.
- That is a long time ago. But I did stay with the Savages a night in
- London long ago, and as I had come into a very strange land, and was
- with friends, as I could see, that has always remained in my mind as a
- peculiarly blessed evening, since it brought me into contact with
- men of my own kind and my own feelings.
- I am glad to be here, and to see you all again, because it is very
- likely that I shall not see you again. It is easier than I thought
- to come across the Atlantic. I have been received, as you know, in the
- most delightfully generous way in England ever since I came here. It
- keeps me choked up all the time. Everybody is so generous, and they do
- seem to give you such a hearty welcome. Nobody in the world, can
- appreciate it higher than I do. It did not wait till I got to
- London, but when I came ashore at Tilbury the stevedores on the dock
- raised the first welcome- a good and hearty welcome from the men who
- do the heavy labor in the world, and save you and me having to do
- it. They are the men who with their hands build empires and make
- them prosper. It is because of them that the others are wealthy and
- can live in luxury. They received me with a "Hurrah!" that went to
- my heart. They are the men that build civilization, and without them
- no civilization can be built. So I came first to the authors and
- creators of civilization, and I blessedly end this happy meeting
- with the Savages who destroy it.
- GENERAL MILES AND THE DOG.
-
- Mr. Clemens was the guest of honor at a dinner given by the Pleiades
- Club at the Hotel Brevoort, December 22, 1907- The toastmaster
- introduced the guest of the evening with a high tribute to his place
- in American literature, saying that he was dear to the hearts of all
- Americans.
-
- IT is hard work to make a speech when you have listened to
- compliments from the powers in authority. A compliment is a hard
- text to preach to. When the chairman introduces me as a person of
- merit, and when he says pleasant things about me, I always feel like
- answering simply that what he says is true; that it is all right;
- that, as far as I am concerned, the things he said can stand as they
- are. But you always have to say something, and that is what
- frightens me.
- I remember out in Sydney once having to respond to some
- complimentary toast, and my one desire was to turn in my tracks like
- any other worm- and run for it. I was remembering that occasion at a
- later date when I had to introduce a speaker. Hoping, then, to spur
- his speech by putting him, in joke, on the defensive, I accused him in
- my introduction of everything I thought it impossible for him to
- have committed. When I finished there was an awful calm. I had been
- telling his life history by mistake.
- One must keep up one's character. Earn a character first if you can,
- and if you can't, then assume one. From the code of morals I have been
- following and revising and revising for seventy-two years I remember
- one detail. All my life I have been honest- comparatively honest. I
- could never use money I had not made honestly- I could only lend it.
- Last spring I met General Miles again, and he commented on the
- fact that we had known each other thirty years. He said it was strange
- that we had not met years before, when we had both been in Washington.
- At that point I changed the subject, and I changed it with art. But
- the facts are these:
- I was then under contract for my Innocents Abroad, but did not
- have a cent to live on while I wrote it. So I went to Washington to do
- a little journalism. There I met an equally poor friend, William
- Davidson, who had not a single vice, unless you call it a vice in a
- Scot to love Scotch. Together we devised the first and original
- newspaper syndicate, selling two letters a week to twelve newspapers
- and getting $1 a letter. That $24 a week would have been enough for
- us- if we had not had to support the jug.
- But there was a day when we felt that we must have $3 right away- $3
- at once. That was how I met the General. It doesn't matter now what we
- wanted so much money at one time for, but that Scot and I did
- occasionally want it. The Scot sent me out one day to get it. He had a
- great belief in Providence, that Scottish friend of mine. He said:
- "The Lord will provide."
- I had given up trying to find the money lying about, and was in a
- hotel lobby in despair, when I saw a beautiful unfriended dog. The dog
- saw me, too, and at once we became acquainted. Then General Miles came
- in, admired the dog, and asked me to price it. I priced it at $3. He
- offered me an opportunity to reconsider the value of the beautiful
- animal, but I refused to take more than Providence knew I needed.
- The General carried the dog to his room.
- Then came in a sweet little middle-aged man, who at once began
- looking around the lobby.
- "Did you lose a dog?" I asked. He said he had.
- "I think I could find it," I volunteered, "for a small sum."
- "'How much?'" he asked. And I told him $3. He urged me to accept
- more, but I did not wish to outdo Providence. Then I went to the
- General's room and asked for the dog back. He was very angry, and
- wanted to know why I had sold him a dog that did not belong to me.
- "That's a singular question to ask me, sir," I replied. "Didn't
- you ask me to sell him? You started it." And he let me have him. I
- gave him back his $3 and returned the dog, collect, to its owner. That
- second $3 I carried home to the Scot, and we enjoyed it, but the first
- $3, the money I got from the General, I would have had to lend.
- The General seemed not to remember my part in that adventure, and
- I never had the heart to tell him about it.
- WHEN IN DOUBT, TELL THE TRUTH.
-
- Mark Twain's speech at the dinner of the "Freundschaft Society,"
- March 9, 1906, had as a basis the words of introduction used by
- Toastmaster Frank, who, referring to Pudd'nhead Wilson, used the
- phrase, "When in doubt, tell the truth."
-
- MR. CHAIRMAN, MR. PUTZEL, AND GENTLEMEN OF THE FREUNDSCHAFT,- That
- maxim I did invent, but never expected it to be applied to me. I did
- say, "When you are in doubt," but when I am in doubt myself I use more
- sagacity.
- Mr. Grout suggested that if I have anything to say against Mr.
- Putzel, or any criticism of his career or his character, I am the last
- person to come out on account of that maxim and tell the truth. That
- is altogether a mistake.
- I do think it is right for other people to be virtuous so that
- they can be happy hereafter, but if I knew every impropriety that even
- Mr. Putzel has committed in his life, I would not mention one of them.
- My judgment has been maturing for seventy years, and I have got to
- that point where I know better than that.
- Mr. Putzel stands related to me in a very tender way (through the
- tax office), and it does not behoove me to say anything which could by
- any possibility militate against that condition of things.
- Now, that word- taxes, taxes, taxes! I have heard it to-night. I
- have heard it all night. I wish somebody would change that subject;
- that is a very sore subject to me.
- I was so relieved when Judge Leventritt did find something that
- was not taxable- when he said that the commissioner could not tax your
- patience. And that comforted me. We've got so much taxation. I don't
- know of a single foreign product that enters this country untaxed
- except the answer to prayer.
- On an occasion like this the proprieties require that you merely pay
- compliments to the guest of the occasion, and I am merely here to
- pay compliments to the guest of the occasion, not to criticise him
- in any way, and I can say only complimentary things to him.
- When I went down to the tax office some time ago, for the first time
- in New York, I saw Mr. Putzel sitting in the "Seat of Perjury." I
- recognized him right away. I warmed to him on the spot. I didn't
- know that I had ever seen him before, but just as soon as I saw him
- I recognized him. I had met him twenty-five years before, and at
- that time had achieved a knowledge of his abilities and something more
- than that.
- I thought: "Now, this is the man whom I saw twenty-five years
- ago." On that occasion I not only went free at his hands, but
- carried off something more than that. I hoped it would happen again.
- It was twenty-five years ago when I saw a young clerk in Putnam's
- book-store. I went in there and asked for George Haven Putnam, and
- handed him my card, and then the young man said Mr. Putnam was busy
- and I couldn't see him. Well, I had merely called in a social way, and
- so it didn't matter.
- I was going out when I saw a great big, fat, interesting-looking
- book lying there, and I took it up. It was an account of the
- invasion of England in the fourteenth century by the Preaching
- Friar, and it interested me.
- I asked him the price of it, and he said four dollars.
- "Well," I said, "what discount do you allow to publishers?"
- He said: "Forty per cent. off."
- I said: "All right, I am a publisher."
- He put down the figure, forty per cent. off, on a card.
- Then I said: "What discount do you allow to authors?"
- He said: "Forty per cent. off."
- "Well," I said, "set me down as an author."
- "Now," said I, "what discount do you allow to the clergy?"
- He said: "Forty per cent. off."
- I said to him that I was only on the road, and that I was studying
- for the ministry. I asked him wouldn't he knock off twenty per cent.
- for that. He set down the figure, and he never smiled once.
- I was working off these humorous brilliancies on him and getting
- no return- not a scintillation in his eye, not a spark of
- recognition of what I was doing there. I was almost in despair.
- I thought I might try him once more, so I said: "Now, I am also a
- member of the human race. Will you let me have the ten per cent. off
- for that?" He set it down, and never smiled.
- Well, I gave it up. I said: "There is my card with my address on it,
- but I have not any money with me. Will you please send the bill to
- Hartford?" I took up the book and was going away.
- He said: "Wait a minute. There is forty cents coming to you."
- When I met him in the tax office I thought maybe I could make
- something again, but I could not. But I had not any idea I could
- when I came, and as it turned out I did get off entirely free.
- I put up my hand and made a statement. It gave me a good deal of
- pain to do that. I was not used to it. I was born and reared in the
- higher circles of Missouri, and there we don't do such things-
- didn't in my time, but we have got that little matter settled- got a
- sort of tax levied on me.
- Then he touched me. Yes, he touched me this time, because he
- cried- cried! He was moved to tears to see that I, a virtuous person
- only a year before, after immersion for one year- during one year in
- the New York morals- had no more conscience than a millionaire.
- THE DAY WE CELEBRATE.
-
- ADDRESS AT THE FOURTH-OF-JULY DINNER OF THE
- AMERICAN SOCIETY, LONDON, 1899.
-
- I NOTICED in Ambassador Choate's speech that he said: "You may be
- Americans or Englishmen, but you cannot be both at the same time." You
- responded by applause.
- Consider the effect of a short residence here. I find the Ambassador
- rises first to speak to a toast, followed by a Senator, and I come
- third. What a subtle tribute that to monarchial influence of the
- country when you place rank above respectability!
- I was born modest, and if I had not been things like this would
- force it upon me. I understand it quite well. I am here to see that
- between them they do justice to the day we celebrate, and in case they
- do not I must do it myself. But I notice they have considered this day
- merely from one side- its sentimental, patriotic, poetic side. But
- it has another side. It has a commercial, a business side that needs
- reforming. It has a historical side.
- I do not say "an" historical side, because I am speaking the
- American language. I do not see why our cousins should continue to say
- "an" hospital, "an" historical fact, "an" horse. It seems to me the
- Congress of Women, now in session, should look to it. I think "an"
- is having a little too much to do with it. It comes of habit, which
- accounts for many things.
- Yesterday, for example, I was at a luncheon party. At the end of the
- party a great dignitary of the English Established Church went away
- half an hour before anybody else and carried off my hat. Now, that was
- an innocent act on his part. He went out first, and of course had
- the choice of hats. As a rule I try to get out first myself. But I
- hold that it was an innocent, unconscious act, due, perhaps, to
- heredity. He was thinking about ecclesiastical matters, and when a man
- is in that condition of mind he will take anybody's hat. The result
- was that the whole afternoon I was under the influence of his clerical
- hat and could not tell a lie. Of course, he was hard at it.
- It is a compliment to both of us. His hat fitted me exactly; my hat
- fitted him exactly. So I judge I was born to rise to high dignity in
- the Church some how or other, but I do not know what he was born for.
- That is an illustration of the influence of habit, and it is
- perceptible here when they say "an" hospital, "an" European, "an"
- historical.
- The business aspects of the Fourth of July is not perfect as it
- stands. See what it costs us every year with loss of life, the
- crippling of thousands with its fireworks, and the burning down of
- property. It is not only sacred to patriotism and universal freedom,
- but to the surgeon, the undertaker, the insurance offices- and they
- are working it for all it is worth.
- I am pleased to see that we have a cessation of war for the time.
- This coming from me, a soldier, you will appreciate. I was a soldier
- in the Southern war for two weeks, and when gentlemen get up to
- speak of the great deeds our army and navy have recently done, why, it
- goes all through me and fires up the old war spirit. I had in my first
- engagement three horses shot under me. The next ones went over my
- head, the next hit me in the back. Then I retired to meet an
- engagement.
- I thank you, gentlemen, for making even a slight reference to the
- war profession, in which I distinguished myself, short as my career
- was.
- INDEPENDENCE DAY.
-
- The American Society in London gave a banquet, July 4, 1907, at
- the Hotel Cecil. Ambassador Choate called on Mr. Clemens to respond to
- the toast "The Day We Celebrate."
-
- MR. CHAIRMAN, MY LORD, AND GENTLEMEN,- Once more it happens, as it
- has happened so often since I arrived in England a week or two ago,
- that instead of celebrating the Fourth of July properly as has been
- indicated, I have to first take care of my personal character.
- Sir Mortimer Durand still remains unconvinced. Well, I tried to
- convince these people from the beginning that I did not take the Ascot
- Cup; and as I have failed to convince anybody that I did not take
- the cup, I might as well confess I did take it and be done with it.
- I don't see why this uncharitable feeling should follow me everywhere,
- and why I should have that crime thrown up to me on all occasions. The
- tears that I have wept over it ought to have created a different
- feeling than this- and, besides, I don't think it is very right or
- fair that, considering England has been trying to take a cup of ours
- for forty years- I don't see why they should take so much trouble when
- I tried to go into the business myself.
- Sir Mortimer Durand, too, has had trouble from going to a dinner
- here, and he has told you what he suffered in consequence. But what
- did he suffer? He only missed his train and one night of discomfort,
- and he remembers it to this day. Oh! if you could only think what I
- have suffered from a similar circumstance. Two or three years ago,
- in New York, with that Society there which is made up of people from
- all British Colonies, and from Great Britain, generally, who were
- educated in British colleges and British schools, I was there to
- respond to a toast of some kind or other, and I did then what I have
- been in the habit of doing, from a selfish motive, for a long time,
- and that is, I got myself placed No. 3 in the list of speakers- then
- you get home early.
- I had to go five miles up-river, and had to catch a particular train
- or not get there. But see the magnanimity which is born in me, which I
- have cultivated all my life. A very famous and very great British
- clergyman came to me presently, and he said: "I am away down in the
- list; I have got to catch a certain train this Saturday night; if I
- don't catch that train I shall be carried beyond midnight and break
- the Sabbath. Won't you change places with me? I said: "Certainly I
- will." I did it at once. Now, see what happened. Talk about Sir
- Mortimer Durand's sufferings for a single night! I have suffered
- ever since. because I saved that gentleman from breaking the
- Sabbath- yes, saved him. I took his place, but I lost my train, and it
- was I who broke the Sabbath. Up to that time I never had broken the
- Sabbath in my life and from that day to this I never have kept it.
- Oh! I am learning much here to-night. I find I didn't know
- anything about the American Society- that is, I didn't know its
- chief virtue. I didn't know its chief virtue until his Excellency
- our Ambassador revealed it- I may say, exposed it. I was intending
- to go home on the 13th of this month, but I look upon that in a
- different light now. I am going to stay here until the American
- Society pays my passage.
- Our Ambassador has spoken of our Fourth of July and the noise it
- makes. We have got a double Fourth of July- a daylight Fourth and a
- midnight Fourth. During the day in America, as our Ambassador has
- indicated, we keep the Fourth of July properly in a reverent spirit.
- We devote it to teaching our children patriotic things- reverence
- for the Declaration of Independence. We honor the day all through
- the daylight hour's, and when night comes we dishonor it. Presently-
- before long- they are getting nearly ready to begin now- on the
- Atlantic coast, when night shuts down, that pandemonium will begin,
- and there will be noise, and noise, and noise- all night long- and
- there will be more than noise- there will be people crippled, there
- will be people killed, there will be people who will lose their
- eyes, and all through that permission which we give to irresponsible
- boys to play with firearms and fire-crackers, and all sorts of
- dangerous things. We turn that Fourth of July, alas! over to rowdies
- to drink and get drunk and make the night hideous, and we cripple
- and kill more people than you would imagine.
- We probably began to celebrate our Fourth-of-July night in that
- way one hundred and twenty-five years ago, and on every Fourth-of-July
- night since these horrors have grown and grown, until now, in our five
- thousand towns of America, somebody gets killed or crippled on every
- Fourth-of-July night, besides those cases of sick persons whom we
- never hear of, who die as the result of the noise or the shock. They
- cripple and kill more people on the Fourth of July in America than
- they kill and cripple in our wars nowadays, and there are no
- pensions for these folk. And, too, we burn houses. Really we destroy
- more property on every Fourth-of-July night than the whole of the
- United States was worth one hundred and twenty-five years ago.
- Really our Fourth of July is our day of mourning, our day of sorrow.
- Fifty thousand people who have lost friends, or who have had friends
- crippled, receive that Fourth of July, when it comes, as a day of
- mourning for the losses they have sustained in their families.
- I have suffered in that way myself. I have had relatives killed in
- that way. One was in Chicago years ago- an uncle of mine, just as good
- an uncle as I have ever had, and I had lots of them- yes, uncles to
- burn, uncles to spare. This poor uncle, full of patriotism, opened his
- mouth to hurrah, and a rocket went down his throat. Before that man
- could ask for a drink of water to quench that thing, it blew up and
- scattered him all over the forty-five States, and- really, now, this
- is true- I know about it myself- twenty-four hours after that it was
- raining buttons, recognizable as his, on the Atlantic seaboard. A
- person cannot have a disaster like that and be entirely cheerful the
- rest of his life. I had another uncle, on an entirely different Fourth
- of July, who was blown up that way, and really it trimmed him as it
- would a tree. He had hardly a limb left on him anywhere. All we have
- left now is an expurgated edition of that uncle. But never mind
- about these things; they are merely passing matters. Don't let me make
- you sad.
- Sir Mortimer Durand said that you, the English people, gave up
- your colonies over there- got tired of them- and did it with
- reluctance. Now I wish you just to consider that he was right about
- that, and that he had his reasons for saying that England did not look
- upon our Revolution as a foreign war, but as a civil war fought by
- Englishmen.
- Our Fourth of July which we honor so much, and which we love so
- much, and which we take so much pride in, is an English institution,
- not an American one, and it comes of a great ancestry. The first
- Fourth of July in that noble genealogy dates back seven centuries
- lacking eight years. That is the day of the Great Charter- the Magna
- Charta- which was born at Runnymede in the next to the last year of
- King John, and portions of the liberties secured thus by those hardy
- Barons from that reluctant King John are a part of our Declaration
- of Independence, of our Fourth of July, of our American liberties. And
- the second of those Fourths of July was not born until four
- centuries later, in Charles the First's time in the Bill of Rights,
- and that is ours, that is part of our liberties. The next one was
- still English, in New England, where they established that principle
- which remains with us to this day, and in will continue to remain with
- us- no taxation without-representation. That is always going to stand,
- and that the English Colonies in New England gave us.
- The Fourth of July, and the one which you are celebrating now,
- born in Philadelphia on the 4th of July, 1776- that is English, too.
- It is not American. Those were English colonists, subjects of King
- George III., Englishmen at heart, who protested against the
- oppressions of the Home Government. Though they proposed to cure those
- oppressions and remove them, still remaining under the Crown, they
- were not intending a revolution. The revolution was brought about by
- circumstances which they could not control. The Declaration of
- Independence was written by a British subject, every name signed to it
- was the name of a British subject. There was not the name of a
- single American attached to the Declaration of Independence- in
- fact, there was not an American in the country in that day except
- the Indians out on the plains. They were Englishmen, all Englishmen-
- Americans did not begin until seven years later, when that Fourth of
- July had become seven years old, and then the American Republic was
- established. Since then there have been Americans. So you see what
- we owe to England in the matter of liberties.
- We have, however, one Fourth of July which is absolutely our own,
- and that is that great proclamation issued forty years ago by that
- great American to whom Sir Mortimer Durand paid that just and
- beautiful tribute- Abraham Lincoln. Lincoln's proclamation, which
- not only set the black slaves free, but set the white man free also.
- The owner was set free from the burden and offence, that sad condition
- of things where he was in so many instances a master and owner of
- slaves when he did not want to be. That proclamation set them all
- free. But even in this matter England suggested it, for England had
- set her slaves free thirty years before, and we followed her
- example. We always followed her example, whether it was good or bad.
- And it was an English judge that issued that other great
- proclamation, and established that great principle that, when a slave,
- let him belong to whom he may, and let him come whence he may, sets
- his foot upon English soil, his fetters by that act fall away and he
- is a free man before the world. We followed the example of 1833, and
- we freed our slaves as I have said.
- It is true, then, that all our Fourths of July, and we have five
- of them, England gave to us, except that one that I have mentioned-
- the Emancipation Proclamation, and, lest we forget, let us all
- remember that we owe these things to England. Let us be able to say to
- Old England, this great-hearted, venerable old mother of the race, you
- gave us our Fourths of July that we love and that we honor and revere,
- you gave us the Declaration of Independence, which is the Charter of
- our rights, you, the venerable Mother of Liberties, the Protector of
- Anglo-Saxon Freedom- you gave us these things, and we do most honestly
- thank you for them.
- AMERICANS AND THE ENGLISH.
-
- ADDRESS AT A GATHERING OF AMERICANS IN
- LONDON, JULY 4, 1872.
-
- MR. CHAIRMAN AND LADIES AND GENTLEMEN,- I thank you for the
- compliment which has just been tendered me, and to show my
- appreciation of it I will not afflict you with many words. It is
- pleasant to celebrate in this peaceful way, upon this old mother soil,
- the anniversary of an experiment which was born of war with this
- same land so long ago, and wrought out to a successful issue by the
- devotion of our ancestors. It has taken nearly a hundred years to
- bring the English and Americans into kindly and mutually
- appreciative relations, but I believe it has been accomplished at
- last. It was a great step when the two last misunderstandings were
- settled by arbitration instead of cannon. It is another great step
- when England adopts our sewing-machines without claiming the
- invention- as usual. It was another when they imported one of our
- sleeping-cars the other day. And it warmed my heart more than I can
- tell, yesterday, when I witnessed the spectacle of an Englishman
- ordering an American sherry cobbler of his own free will and accord-
- and not only that but with a great brain and a level head reminding
- the barkeeper not to forget the strawberries. With a common origin,
- a common language, a common literature, a common religion, and- common
- drinks, what is longer needful to the cementing of the two nations
- together in a permanent bond of brotherhood?
- This is an age of progress, and ours is a progressive land. A
- great and glorious land, too- a land which has developed a Washington,
- a Franklin, a Wm. M. Tweed, a Longfellow, a Motley, a Jay Gould, a
- Samuel C. Pomeroy, a recent Congress which has never had its equal (in
- some respects), and a United States Army which conquered sixty Indians
- in eight months by tiring them out- which is much better than
- uncivilized slaughter, God knows. We have a criminal jury system which
- is superior to any in the world and its efficiency is only marred by
- the difficulty of finding twelve men every day who don't know anything
- and can't read. And I may observe that we have an insanity plea that
- would have saved Cain. I think I can say, and say with pride, that
- we have some legislatures that bring higher prices than any in the
- world.
- I refer with effusion to our railway system, which contents to let
- us live, though it might do the opposite, being our owners. It only
- destroyed three thousand and seventy lives last year by collisions,
- and twenty-seven thousand two hundred and sixty by running over
- heedless and unnecessary people at crossings. The companies
- seriously regretted the killing of these thirty thousand people, and
- went so far as to pay for some of them- voluntarily, of course, for
- the meanest of us would not claim that we possess a court
- treacherous enough to enforce a law against a railway company. But,
- thank Heaven, the railway companies are generally disposed to do the
- right and kindly thing without compulsion. I know of an instance which
- greatly touched me at the time. After an accident the company sent
- home the remains of a dear distant old relative of mine in a basket,
- with the remark, "Please state what figure you hold him at- and return
- the basket." Now there couldn't be anything friendlier than that.
- But I must not stand here and brag all night. However, you won't
- mind a body bragging a little about his country on the Fourth of July.
- It is a fair and legitimate time to fly the eagle. I will say only one
- more word of brag- and a hopeful one. It is this. We have a form of
- government which gives each man a fair chance and no favor. With us no
- individual is born with a right to look down upon his neighbor and
- hold him in contempt. Let such of us as are not dukes find our
- consolation in that. And we may find hope for the future in the fact
- that as unhappy as is the condition of our political morality
- to-day, England has risen up out of a far fouler since the days when
- Charles I. ennobled courtesans and all political place was a matter of
- bargain and sale. There is hope for us yet.*
-
- * At least the above is the speech which I was going to make, but
- our minister, General Schenck, presided, and after the blessing, got
- up and made a great, long, inconceivably dull harangue, and wound up
- by saying that inasmuch as speech-making did not seem to exhilarate
- the guests much, all further oratory would be dispensed with during
- the evening, and we could just sit and talk privately to our
- elbow-neighbors and have a good, sociable time. It is known that in
- consequence of that remark forty-four perfected speeches died in the
- womb. The depression, the gloom, the solemnity that reigned over the
- banquet from that time forth will be a lasting memory with many that
- were there. By that one thoughtless remark General Schenck lost
- forty-four of the best friends he had in England. More than one said
- that night: "And this is the sort of person that is sent to
- represent us in a great sister empire!"
- ABOUT LONDON.
-
- ADDRESS AT A DINNER GIVEN BY THE SAVAGE CLUB,
- LONDON, SEPTEMBER 28, 1872.
-
- Reported by Moncure D. Conway in the Cincinnati Commercial.
-
- IT affords me sincere pleasure to meet this distinguished club, a
- club which has extended its hospitalities and its cordial welcome to
- so many of my countrymen. I hope [and here the speaker's voice
- became low and fluttering] you will excuse these clothes. I am going
- to the theatre; that will explain these clothes. I have other
- clothes than these. Judging human nature by what I have seen of it,
- I suppose that the customary thing for a stranger to do when he stands
- here is to make a pun on the name of this club, under the
- impression, of course, that he is the first man that that idea has
- occurred to. It is a credit to our human nature, not a blemish upon
- it; for it shows that underlying all our depravity (and God knows
- and you know we are depraved enough) and all our sophistication, and
- untarnished by them, there is a sweet germ of innocence and simplicity
- still. When a stranger says to me, with a glow of inspiration in his
- eye, some gentle, innocuous little thing about "Twain and one
- flesh," and all that sort of thing, I don't try to crush that man into
- the earth- no. I feel like saying: "Let me take you by the hand,
- sir; let me embrace you; I have not heard that pun for weeks." We will
- deal in palpable puns. We will call parties named King "Your Majesty,"
- and we will say to the Smiths that we think we have heard that name
- before somewhere. Such is human nature. We cannot alter this. It is
- God that made us so for some good and wise Purpose. Let us not repine.
- But though I may seem strange, may seem eccentric, I mean to refrain
- from punning upon the name of this club, though I could make a very
- good one if I had time to think about it- a week.
- I cannot express to you what entire enjoyment I find in this first
- visit to this prodigious metropolis of yours. Its wonders seem to me
- to be limitless. I go about as in a dream- as in a realm of
- enchantment- where many things are rare and beautiful, and all
- things are strange and marvellous. Hour after hour I stand- I stand
- spellbound, as it were- and gaze upon the statuary in Leicester
- Square. [Leicester Square being a horrible chaos, with the relic of an
- equestrian statue in the centre, the king being headless and limbless,
- and the horse in little better condition.] I visit the mortuary
- effigies of noble old Henry VIII., and Judge Jeffreys, and the
- preserved gorilla, and try to make up my mind which of my ancestors
- I admire the most. I go to that matchless Hyde Park and drive all
- around it, and then I start to enter it at the Marble Arch- and- am
- induced to "change my mind." [Cabs are not permitted in Hyde Park-
- nothing less aristocratic than a private carriage.] It is a great
- benefaction- is Hyde Park. There, in his hansom cab, the invalid can
- go- the poor, sad child of misfortune- and insert his nose between the
- railings, and breathe the pure, health-giving air of the country and
- of heaven. And if he is a swell invalid, who isn't obliged to depend
- upon parks for his country air, he can drive inside- if he owns his
- vehicle. I drive round and round Hyde Park, and the more I see of
- the edges of it the more grateful I am that the margin is extensive.
- And I have been to the Zoological Gardens. What a wonderful place
- that is! I never have seen such a curious and interesting variety of
- wild animals in any garden before- except "Mabille." I never
- believed before there were so many different kinds of animals in the
- world as you can find there- and I don't believe it yet. I have been
- to the British Museum. I would advise you to drop in there some time
- when you have nothing to do for- five minutes- if you have never
- been there. It seems to me the noblest monument that this nation has
- yet erected to her greatness. I say to her, our greatness- as a
- nation. True, she has built other monuments, and stately ones, as
- well; but these she has uplifted in honor of two or three colossal
- demigods who have stalked across the world's stage, destroying tyrants
- and delivering nations, and whose prodigies will still live in the
- memories of men ages after their monuments shall have crumbled to
- dust- I refer to the Wellington and Nelson monuments, and- the
- Albert memorial. [Sarcasm. The Albert memorial is the finest
- monument in the world, and celebrates the existence of as
- commonplace a person as good luck ever lifted out of obscurity.]
- The library at the British Museum I find particularly astounding.
- I have read there hours together, and hardly made an impression on it.
- I revere that library. It is the author's friend. I don't care how
- mean a book is, it always takes one copy. [A copy of every book
- printed in Great Britain must by law be sent to the British Museum,
- a law much complained of by publishers.] And then every day that
- author goes there to gaze at that book, and is encouraged to go on
- in the good work. And what a touching sight it is of a Saturday
- afternoon to see the poor, care-worn clergymen gathered together in
- that vast reading-room cabbaging sermons for Sunday. You will pardon
- my referring to these things. Everything in this monster city
- interests me, and I cannot keep from talking, even at the risk of
- being instructive. People here seem always to express distances by
- parables. To a stranger it is just a little confusing to be so
- parabolic- so to speak. I collar a citizen, and I think I am going
- to get some valuable information out of him. I ask him how far it is
- to Birmingham, and he says it is twenty-one shillings and sixpence.
- Now we know that doesn't help a man who is trying to learn. I find
- myself down-town somewhere, and I want to get some sort of idea
- where I am- being usually lost when alone- and I stop a citizen and
- say: "How far is it to Charing Cross?" "Shilling fare in a cab," and
- off he goes. I suppose if I were to ask a Londoner how far it is
- from the sublime to the ridiculous, he would try to express it in
- coin. But I am trespassing upon your time with these geological
- statistics and historical reflections. I will not longer keep you from
- your orgies. 'Tis a real pleasure for me to be here, and I thank you
- for it. The name of the Savage Club is associated in my mind with
- the kindly interest and the friendly offices which you lavished upon
- an old friend of mine who came among you a stranger, and you opened
- your English hearts to him and gave him welcome and a home- Artemus
- Ward. Asking that you will join me, I give you his memory.
- PRINCETON
- PRINCETON.
-
- Mr. Clemens spent several days in May, 1901, in Princeton, New
- Jersey, as the guest of Lawrence Hutton. He gave a reading one evening
- before a large audience composed of university students and
- professors. Before the reading Mr. Clemens said:
-
- I FEEL exceedingly surreptitious in coming down here without an
- announcement of any kind. I do not want to see any advertisements
- around, for the reason that I'm not a lecturer any longer. I
- reformed long ago, and I break over and commit this sin only just
- one time this year- and that is moderate, I think, for a person of
- my disposition. It is not my purpose to lecture any more as long as
- I live. I never intend to stand up on a platform any more- unless by
- the request of a sheriff or something like that.
- THE ST. LOUIS HARBOR-BOAT
- "MARK TWAIN".
-
- The Countess de Rochambeau christened the St. Louis harbor-boat Mark
- Twain in honor of Mr. Clemens June 6, 19O2. Just before the luncheon
- he acted as pilot.
- "Lower away lead!" boomed out the voice of the pilot.
- "Mark twain, quarter five and one-half- six feet!" replied the
- leadsman below.
- "You are all dead safe as long as I have the wheel- but this is my
- last time at the wheel."
-
- At the luncheon Mr. Clemens made a short address.
-
- FIRST of all, no- second of all- I wish to offer my thanks for the
- honor done me by naming this last rose of summer of the Mississippi
- Valley for me, this boat which represents a perished interest, which I
- fortified long ago, but did not save its life. And, in the first
- place, I wish to thank the Countess de Rochambeau for the honor she
- has done me in presiding at this christening.
- I believe that it is peculiarly appropriate that I should be allowed
- the privilege of joining my voice with the general voice of St.
- Louis and Missouri in welcoming to the Mississippi Valley and this
- part of the continent these illustrious visitors from France.
- When La Salle came down this river a century and a quarter ago there
- was nothing on its banks but savages. He opened up this great river,
- and by his simple act was gathered in this great Louisiana
- territory. I would have done it myself for half the money.
- SEVENTIETH BIRTHDAY.
-
- ADDRESS AT A DINNER GIVEN BY COLONEL GEORGE HARVEY
- AT DELMONICO'S, DECEMBER 5, 1905, TO CELEBRATE
- THE SEVENTIETH ANNIVERSARY OF
- MR. CLEMENS' BIRTH.
-
- Mr. Howells introduced Mr. Clemens:
-
- "Now, ladies and gentlemen, and Colonel Harvey, I will try not to be
- greedy on your behalf in wishing the health of our honored and, in
- view of his great age, our revered guest. I will not say, 'Oh King,
- live forever!' but 'Oh King, live as long as you like!'" [Amid great
- applause and waving of napkins all rise and drink to Mark Twain.]
-
- WELL, if I made that joke, it is the best one I ever made, and it is
- in the prettiest language, too. I never can get quite to that
- height. But I appreciate that joke, and I shall remember it- and I
- shall use it when occasion requires.
- I have had a great many birthdays in my time. I remember the first
- one very well, and I always think of it with indignation; everything
- was so crude, unaesthetic, primeval. Nothing like this at all. No
- proper appreciative preparation made; nothing really ready. Now, for a
- person born with high and delicate instincts- why, even the cradle
- wasn't whitewashed- nothing ready at all. I hadn't any hair, I
- hadn't any teeth, I hadn't any clothes, I had to go to my first
- banquet just like that. Well, everybody came swarming in. It was the
- merest little bit of a village- hardly that, just a little hamlet,
- in the backwoods of Missouri, where nothing ever happened, and the
- people were all interested, and they all came; they looked me over
- to see if there was anything fresh in my line. Why, nothing ever
- happened in that village- I- why, I was the only thing that had really
- happened there for months and months and months; And although I say it
- myself that shouldn't, I came the nearest to being a real event that
- had happened in that village in more than two years. Well, those
- people came, they came with that curiosity which is so provincial,
- with that frankness which also is so provincial, and they examined
- me all around and gave their opinion. Nobody asked them, and I
- shouldn't have minded if anybody had paid me a compliment, but
- nobody did. Their opinions were all just green with prejudice, and I
- feel those opinions to this day. Well, I stood that as long as-
- well, you know I was born courteous and I stood it to the limit. I
- stood it an hour, and then the worm turned. I was the worm; it was
- my turn to turn, and I turned. I knew very well the strength of my
- position; I knew that I was the only spotlessly pure and innocent
- person in that whole town, and I came out and said so. And they
- could not say a word. It was so true, They blushed; they were
- embarrassed. Well that was the first after-dinner speech I ever
- made. I think it was after dinner.
- It's a long stretch between that first birthday speech and this one.
- That was my cradle-song, and this is my swan-song, I suppose. I am
- used to swan-songs; I have sung them several times.
- This is my seventieth birthday, and I wonder if you all rise to
- the size of that proposition, realizing all the significance of that
- phrase, seventieth birthday.
- The seventieth birthday! It is the time of life when you arrive at a
- new and awful dignity; when you may throw aside the decent reserves
- which have oppressed you for a generation and stand unafraid and
- unabashed upon your seven-terraced summit and look down and teach-
- unrebuked. You can tell the world how you got there. It is what they
- all do. You shall never get tired of telling by what delicate arts and
- deep moralities you climbed up to that great place. You will explain
- the process and dwell on the particulars with senile rapture. I have
- been anxious to explain my own system this long time, and now at
- last I have the right.
- I have achieved my seventy years in the usual way: by sticking
- strictly to a scheme of life which would kill anybody else. It
- sounds like an exaggeration, but that is really the common rule for
- attaining to old age. When we examine the programme of any of these
- garrulous old people we always find that the habits which have
- preserved them would have decayed us; that the way of life which
- enabled them to live upon the property of their heirs so long, as
- Mr. Choate says, would have put us out of commission ahead of time.
- I will offer here, as a sound maxim, this: That we can't reach old age
- by another man's road.
- I will now teach, offering my way of life to whomsoever desires to
- commit suicide by the scheme which has enabled me to beat the doctor
- and the hangman for seventy years. Some of the details may sound
- untrue, but they are not. I am not here to deceive; I am here to
- teach.
- We have no permanent habits until we are forty. Then they begin to
- harden, presently they petrify, then business begins. Since forty I
- have been regular about going to bed and getting up- and that is one
- of the main things. I have made it a rule to go to bed when there
- wasn't anybody left to sit up with; and I have made it a rule to get
- up when I had to. This has resulted in an unswerving regularity of
- irregularity. It has saved me sound, but it would injure another
- person.
- In the matter of diet- which is another main thing- I have been
- persistently strict in sticking to the things which didn't agree
- with me until one or the other of us got the best of it. Until
- lately I got the best of it myself. But last spring I stopped
- frolicking with mince-pie after midnight; up to then I had always
- believed it wasn't loaded. For thirty years I have taken coffee and
- bread at eight in the morning, and no bite nor sup until
- seven-thirty in the evening. Eleven hours. That is all right for me,
- and is wholesome, because I have never had a headache in my life,
- but headachy people would not reach seventy comfortably by that
- road, and they would be foolish to try it. And I wish to urge upon you
- this- which I think is wisdom- that if you find you can't make seventy
- by any but an uncomfortable road, don't you go. When they take off the
- Pullman and retire you to the rancid smoker, put on your things, count
- your checks, and get out at the first way station where there's a
- cemetery.
- I have made it a rule never to smoke more than one cigar at a
- time. I have no other restriction as regards smoking. I do not know
- just when I began to smoke, I only know that it was in my father's
- lifetime, and that I was discreet. He passed from this life early in
- 1847, when I was a shade past eleven; ever since then I have smoked
- publicly. As an example to others, and not that I care for
- moderation myself, it has always been my rule never to smoke when
- asleep, and never to refrain when awake. It is a good rule. I mean,
- for me; but some of you know quite well that it wouldn't answer for
- everybody that's trying to get to be seventy.
- I smoke in bed until I have to go to sleep; I wake up in the
- night, sometimes once, sometimes twice, sometimes three times, and I
- never waste any of these opportunities to smoke. This habit is so
- old and dear and precious to me that I would feel as you, sir, would
- feel if you should lose the only moral you've got- meaning the
- chairman- if you've got one: I am making no charges. I will grant,
- here, that I have stopped smoking now and then, for a few months at
- a time, but it was not on principle, it was only to show off; it was
- to pulverize those critics who said I was a slave to my habits and
- couldn't break my bonds.
- To-day it is all of sixty years since I began to smoke the limit.
- I have never bought cigars with life-belts around them. I early
- found that those were too expensive for me. I have always bought cheap
- cigars- reasonably cheap, at any rate. Sixty years ago they cost me
- four dollars a barrel, but my taste has improved, latterly, and I
- pay seven now. Six or seven. Seven, I think. Yes, it's seven. But that
- includes the barrel. I often have smoking-parties at my house; but the
- people that come have always just taken the pledge. I wonder why
- that is?
- As for drinking, I have no rule about that. When the others drink
- I like to help; otherwise I remain dry, by habit and preference.
- This dryness does not hurt me, but it could easily hurt you, because
- you are different. You let it alone.
- Since I was seven years old I have seldom taken a dose of
- medicine, and have still seldomer needed one. But up to seven I
- lived exclusively on allopathic medicines. Not that I needed them, for
- I don't think I did; it was for economy; my father took a drug-store
- for a debt, and it made cod-liver oil cheaper than the other breakfast
- foods. We had nine barrels of it, and it lasted me seven years.
- Then. I was weaned. The rest of the family had to get along with
- rhubarb and ipecac and such things, because I was the pet. I was the
- first Standard Oil Trust. I had it all. By the time the drug store was
- exhausted my health was established, and there has never been much the
- matter with, me since. But you know very well it would be foolish
- for the average child to start for seventy on that basis. It
- happened to be just the thing for me, but that was merely an accident;
- it couldn't happen again in a century.
- I have never taken any exercise, except sleeping and resting, and
- I never intend to take any. Exercise is loathsome. And it cannot be
- any benefit when you are tired; and I was always tired. But let
- another person try my way, and see where he will come out.
- I desire now to repeat and emphasize that maxim: We can't reach
- old age by another man's road. My habits protect my life, but they
- would assassinate you.
- I have lived a severely moral life. But it would be a mistake for
- other people to try that, or for me to recommend it. Very few would
- succeed: you have to have a perfectly colossal stock of morals; and
- you can't get them on a margin; you have to have the whole thing,
- and put them in your box. Morals are an acquirement- like music,
- like a foreign language, like piety, poker, paralysis- no man is born.
- with them. I wasn't myself, I started poor. I hadn't a single moral.
- There is hardly a man in this house that is poorer than I was then.
- Yes, I started like that- the world before me, not a moral in the
- slot. Not even an insurance moral. I can remember the first one I ever
- got. I can remember the landscape, the weather, the- I can remember
- how everything looked. It was an old moral, an old second-hand
- moral, all out of repair, and didn't fit, anyway. But if you are
- careful with a thing like that, and keep it in a dry place, and save
- it for processions, and Chautauquas, and World's Fairs, and so on, and
- disinfect it now and then, and give it a fresh coat of whitewash
- once in a while, you will be surprised to see how well she will last
- and how long she will keep sweet, or at least inoffensive. When I
- got that mouldy old moral, she had stopped growing, because she hadn't
- any exercise; but I worked her hard, I worked her Sundays and all.
- Under this cultivation she waxed in might and stature beyond belief,
- and served me well and was my pride and joy for sixty-three years;
- then she got to associating with insurance presidents, and lost
- flesh and character, and was a sorrow to look at and no longer
- competent for business. She was a great loss to me. Yet not all
- loss. I sold her- ah, pathetic skeleton, as she was- I sold her to
- Leopold, the pirate King of Belgium; he sold her to our Metropolitan
- Museum, and it was very glad to get her, for without a rag on, she
- stands 57 feet long and 16 feet high, and they think she's a
- brontosaur. Well, she looks it. They believe it will take nineteen
- geological periods to breed her match.
- Morals are of inestimable value, for every man is born crammed
- with sin microbes, and the only thing that can extirpate these sin
- microbes is morals. Now you take a sterilized Christian- I mean, you
- take the sterilized Christian, for there's only one. Dear sir, I
- wish you wouldn't look at me like that.
- Threescore years and ten!
- It is the Scriptural statute of limitations. After that, you owe
- no active duties; for you the strenuous life is over. You are a
- time-expired man, to use Kipling's military phrase: You have served
- your term, well or less well, and you are mustered out. You are become
- an honorary member of the republic, you are emancipated, compulsions
- are not for you, not any bugle-call but "lights out." You pay the
- time-worn duty bills if you choose, or decline if you prefer- and
- without prejudice- for they are not legally collectable.
- The previous-engagement plea, which in forty years has cost you so
- many twinges, you can lay aside forever; on this side of the grave you
- will never need it again. If you shrink at the thought of night and
- winter, and the late home-coming from the banquet and the lights and
- the laughter through the deserted streets- a desolation which would
- not remind you now, as for a generation it did, that your friends
- are sleeping, and you must creep in a-tiptoe and not disturb them, but
- would only remind you that you need not tiptoe, you can never
- disturb them more- if you shrink at thought of these things, you
- need only reply, "Your invitation honors me, and pleases me because
- you still keep me in your remembrance, but I am seventy; seventy,
- and would nestle in the chimney-corner, and smoke my pipe, and read my
- book, and take my rest, wishing you well in all affection, and that
- when you in your return shall arrive at pier No. 70 you may step
- aboard your waiting ship with a reconciled spirit, and lay your course
- toward the sinking sun with a contented heart.
-
-
- THE END
-